1852 Wright Narratives of Sorcery and Magic
1852 Wright Narratives of Sorcery and Magic
1852 Wright Narratives of Sorcery and Magic
OF
THOMAS WRIGHT, I ;
M.A., F.S.A.,
CORRESPONDING MEMBER OP THE NATIONAL INSTITUTE OP FRANCE,
(ACADEMIE DES INSCRIPTIONS ET BELLES LETTRES.)
REDFIELD,
CLINTON HALL, NEW YORK.
1852.
W. L. Shoemaker
18 W
TO
LORD LONDESBOROUGH.
CONTENTS.
—
Chapter I. Introduction page
—
Chapter IT. Story of the Lady Alice Kyteler
—
...
Chapter III. Further Political Usage of the Belief in Sorcery.
9
23
The Templars 33
— —
Chapter IV. Sorcery in France. The Citizens of Arras 47 .
—
Chapter V. The Lord of Mirebeau and Pierre d'Estaing the
Alchemist 58
Chapter VI. — The early Medieval Type of the Sorcerer Vir- ;
Chapter XII. — The English Magicians Dr. Dee and his Fol-
;
lowers
Chapter
Chapter
XIIL— The
XIV.— The
Witches of Warboys
Poetry of Witchcraft
....
. . . .173
143
159
—
Chapter XXII. The Ursulines of LouduQ . . page 256
.
—
Chapter XXIII. The Lancashire Witches . 266 . .
—
Chapter XXIV. Witchcraft in England during the earlier part
of the Seventeenth Century . . . 286
. . .
Chapter XXX. — Sir Matthew Hale and Chief- Justice Holt 372 .
CHAPTER I.
INTRODUCTORY.
If the universality of a belief be a proof of its truth, few
creeds have been better established than that of sorcery. Every
people, from the rudest to the most refined, we may almost add
in every age, have believed in the kind of supernatural agency
which we understand by this term. It was founded on the
equally extensive creed, that, besides our own visible exis-
tence, we live in an invisible world of spiritual beings, by which
our actions and even our thoughts are often guided, and which
have a certain degree of power over the elements and over the
ordinary course of organic life. Many of these powerful beings
were supposed to be enemies of mankind, fiendish creatures
which thirsted after human blood, or demons whose constant
business it was to tempt and seduce their victim, and deprive him
of the hope of salvation. These beings were themselves sub-
ject to certain mysterious influences, and became the slaves even
of mortals, when by their profound penetration into the secrets
of nature they obtained a knowledge of those influences. But
more frequently their intercourse with man was voluntary, and
the services they rendered him were only intended to draw him
to a more certain destruction. It is a dark subject for investiga-
tion; and we will not pretend to decide whether, and how far,
a higher Providence may, in some cases, have permitted such
intercourse between the natural and supernatural world. Yet the
]0 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
had shown him disrespect, and he set them all by the ears with
his conjurations a wagoner, in whose vehicle he was riding,
;
treated him with insolence, and he terrified him with his enchant-
ments. Another necromancer, according to a story of the thir-
teenth century, went to a town to gain money by his feats the ;
tron died, and the new bishop deprived him of his place and its
emoluments. Theophilus, in his distress, consulted a Jew, who
was a magician the latter called in the fiend, and Theophilus
;
self without any apparent object, unless it were the mere power
of doing evil. The witch remained always the same, poor and
12 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
the dim light of early medieval history, the ideas of our fore-
fathers on this subject, previous to the time when trials for sor-
cery became frequent.
It has been an article of popular belief, from the earliest pe-
riod of the history of the nations of western Europe, that women
were more easily brought into connection with the spiritual world
than men priestesses were the favorite agents of the deities of
:
rous, the gates of the monastery were burst open in spite of the
strength of the bolts, and two of the chains which held down the
coffin were broken, though the middle one held firm. On- the
third night the clamor of the fiends increased till the monastery
trembled from its foundations and the priests, stiff with terror,
;
the demon put his foot to the coffin, the last chain broke asunder
like a bit of thread, and the covering of the cotfin flew off". The
body of the witch then arose, and her persecutor took her by the
hand, and led her to the door, where a black horse of gigantic
stature, its back covered with iron spikes, awaited them, and,
seating her beside him on its back, he disappeared from the sight
of the terrified monks. But the horrible screams of his victim
were heard through the country for miles as they passed along.
At this period the witches met together by night, in solitary
places, to worship their master, who appeared to them in
the shape of a cat, or a goat, or sometimes in that of a man.
At these meetings, as we are informed by John of Salisbury ,'(
they had feasts and some were appointed to serve at table, while
* Ego illud a tali audivi, qui se vidisse juraret, cui erubescerem non credere.
2
14 SORCEKY AND MAGIC.
(for are assured that it was an old woman), answered, " Sir,
we
neither door nor lock can restrain or hinder us from freely going
in and out wherever we choose." Then the priest shut and
bolted the church-doors, and seizing the staff of the cross, " I
will prove if it be true," said he, " that I may repay you for so
great a service," and he belabored the woman's back and shoul-
ders. To all her outcries, his only reply was, " Get out of the
church and fly, since neither door nor lock can restrain you ?"
It was an argument that could not be evaded. A writer of the
twelfth century, however, relates from his otvn knowledge, an in-
cident where a woman in France had been seized for her wicked
opinions, and condemned to the fire but, with a word or two of
;
contempt for her keepers and judges, she approached the win-
dow of the room in which she was confined, uttered a charm, and
instantly disappeared in the air.
Another faculty possessed by the witches of the twelfth and thir-
teenth centuries, was that of taking strange shapes, as those of dif-
THE METAMORPHOSIS. 15
were informed of his profession, they told him that they had an
ass which was remarkable for its intelligence —
being deficient
only in speech, but which would do every kind of feat it was or-
dered to do. The jougleur saw the ass, was delighted with its
exploits, and bought it for a considerable sum of money. The
woman told him at parting, that if he would preserve the animal
long, he must carefully keep it from water. The mountebank
followed these directions, and his ass became a very fertile source
of profit. But its kpeper, with increase of riches, became more
dissolute, and less attentive to his interests and one day while
;
two yards of canvass, with which wax the necromancer and his
man made seven images, the one representing the king with his
crown on his head, the six others representing the two Despen-
sers, the caterer and steward, and a certain person
prior, his
named Richard de Lowe, the latter being chosen merely for the
purpose of trying an experiment upon him to prove the strength
of the charm. Robert Marshall confessed that he and his mas-
ter, John of Nottingham, went to an old ruined house under
Shortely park, about half a league from the city of Coventry, in
:which they began their work on the Monday after the feast of St.
Nicholas, and that they remained constantly at work until the
Saturday after the feast of the Ascension that " as the said Mas-
;
ter John and he were at their work in the said old house the
Friday after the feast of the Holy Cross, about midnight, the said
Master John gave to the said Robert a broach of lead with a sharp
point, and commanded him to push it to the depth of about two
inches in the forehead of the image made after Richard de Lowe,
by which he would prove the others and so he did and the next
; ;
mornmg the said Master John sent the said Robert to the house of
the said Richard de Lowe, to spy in what condition he was, and the
said Robert found the said Richard screaming and crying Har- '
receive their lessons from the evil one. A very remarkable heretical
sorcerer, named Eiido de Stella, lived in the middle of the twelfth
century, and is the subject of several wonderful stories in the
chronicles of those times. By his " diabolical charms," if vi^e
believe William of Newbury, he collected together a great mul-
titude of followers. Sometimes they were carried about from
province to province, vi^ith amazing rapidity, making converts
wherever they stopped. At other times they retired into desert
places, where their leader held his court with great apparent
magnificence, and noble tables were suddenly spread with rich
viands and strong wines, served by invisible spirits, and whatever
the guests wished for was laid before them in an instant. But
William of Newbury tells us that he had heard, from some of
Eudo's followers, that these various meats were not substantial,
that they gave satisfaction only for the moment, which was soon
followed by keener hunger than before, so that they were contin-
ually eating. Any one, however, who once tasted of these meats,
or received any of Eudo's gifts, was immediately held by a charm,
and became involuntarily one of his followers. A
knight of his
acquaintance —
for he was a man of good family —
visited him at
his " fantastic" court, and endeavored in vain to convert him from
his evil ways. When he departed, Eudo presented his esquire
with a handsome hawk. The knight, observing his esquire with
the bird on his hand, advised him to cast it away but he refused,
;
of his salt upon it, than it vanished, and nothing was left on the
dish but a bit of dirt. The uncle, astonished at what had hap-
pened, urged his nephew to abandon his evil courses, but in vain,
and he left him, carrying away as prisoners the two knights who
had corrupted him. To punish these for their heresy, he bound
them in a little hut of inflammable materials, to which he set fire
in order to burn them ; but when the ashes were cleared away,
they were found totally unhurt. To counteract the effects this
false miracle might produce on the minds of the vulgar, the baron
20 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
been sprinkled with holy water would not burn, 'the two sorcerers
were found reduced to ashes. The truth of this story was as-
serted by the prince-bishop of Rheims (for the prelate was the
French king's brother-in-law), and the readiness with which it
more than a century Avas past, they also were exposed to the
worst part of the charges mentioned above. list of the pre- A
tended errors of compiled probably about the end of the
this sect,
thirteenth century, speaks of the same disgraceful proceedings at
their secret meetings of the figure of a cat under which the de-
;
he owed anything to him. " Tell him," said the stranger, with
a ferocious look, " that I will have my debt to-night !" The hus-
band returned, and, when informed of Avhat had taken place,
merely remarked that the demand was just. He then ordered
his bed to be made that night in an outhouse, where he had never
slept before, and he shut himself in it with a lighted candle.
The family were astonished, and could not resist the impulse to
gratify their curiosity by looking through the holes in the door.
They beheld the same stranger, who had entered without open-
ing the door, seated beside his victim, and they appeared to be
counting large sums of money. Soon they began to quarrel about
their accounts, and were proceeding from threats to blows, when
the servants, who were looking through the door, burst it open,
that they might help their master. The light was instantly ex-
tinguished, and when another was brought, no traces could be
found of either of the disputants, nor were they ever afterward
heard of. The suspicious-looking stranger was the demon him-
self, who had carried away his victim.
In some cases the demon interfered uncalled for, and without
any apparent advantage to himself. A story told by Walter
Mapes furnishes a curious illustration of this, while it shows us
the strong tendency of the popular mind to believe in supernatu-
ral agency. The wars and troubles of the twelfth century, joined
with the defective construction of the social system, exposed
France and other countries to the ravages of troops of soldier-
robbers, who made war on society for their own gain, and who
represented in a rude form the Free Companies of a later pei'iod.
They were commonly known by the appellation of Rentiers, and
in many instances had for their leaders knights and gentlemen
who, having squandered away their property, or incurred the ban
of society, betook themselves to this wild mode of life. The
chief of one of the bands which ravaged the diocese of Beauvais
in the twelfth century was named Eudo. He was the son and
heir of a baron of great wealth, but had wasted his patrimony un-
til he was reduced to beggary. One day he wandered from the
city into a neighboring wood, and there he sank down on a bank-
side, reflecting on his own miserable condition. Suddenly he
was roused from his revery by the appearance of a stranger, a
man of large stature but repulsive countenance, who nevertheless
addressed him in conciliatory language, and soon showed that he
knew all his affairs. The stranger, who was no other than a^
demon in disguise, promised Eudo that he should not only re-
cover his former riches, but that he should gain infinitely more
22 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
ommended him, above all things, to submit to the bishop and rec-
oncile himself to the church. Eudo obeyed, obtained the bishop's
absolution, led a better life for a short time, and then
returned to
his old ways, and became worse than before. In the course of
one of his plundering expeditions, he was thrown from his horse,
and broke his leg. This Eudo took as his first warning he ;
repented anew, went to the bishop and made his confession (omit-
ting, however, all mention of his compact v/ith Olga),
and re-
mained peaceful till his recovery from the accident, when he col-
lected his followers again, and pursued his old hfe with
such
eagerness, that no one could speak of his name without horror.
A second warning, the loss of his eye by an arrow, had the same
result. At length he was visited by the third and last warning,
the death of his only son, and then true penitence visited his
heart. He hastened to the city of Beauvais, and found the bishop
outside the walls assisting at the burning of a witch. But the
prelate had now experienced so many times the falseness of
Eudo's penitence, that he refused to believe it when true. The
earnest supplications of the sinner, even the tardy sympathy of
the muhitude who stood round, most of whom had been sufferers
from his violence, were of no avail, and the bishop persisted in
refusing to the unhappy man the consolations of the church. At
THE LADY ALICE KYTELER. 23
CHAPTER II.
the time of which we are speaking, its chief town, named also
Kilkenny, was a strong city with a commanding castle, and was
inhabited by wealthy merchants, one of whom was a rich banker
and money-lender named William Outlawe.
This William Outlawe married a lady of property named Alice
Kyteler, or Le Kyteler, who was, perhaps, the sister or a near rela-
tive of a William Kyteler, incidentally mentioned as holding the
office of sheriff" of the liberty of Kilkenny. William Outlawe died
some time before 1 302 and his widow became the wife of Adam le
;
at the time of the events narrated in the following pages, she was
the spouse of a fourth husband, Sir John le Poer. By her first
husband she had a son, named also William Outlawe, who ap-
pears to have been the heir to his father's property, and suc-
ceeded him as a banker. He was his mother's favorite child,
and seems to have inherited also a good portion of the wealth of
the lady Alice's second and third husbands.
The few incidents relating to this family previous to the year
1324, which can be gathered from the entries on the Irish rec-
ords, seem to show that it was not altogether free from the turbu-
lent spirit which was so prevalent among the Anglo-Irish in for-
mer ages. It appears that, in Adam
le Blond and Alice
1302,
his wife intrusted to the
keeping of William Outlawe the younger
the sum of three thousand pounds in money, which William Out-
lawe, for the better security, buried in the earth within his house,
a method of concealing treasure which accounts for many of our
antiquarian discoveries. This was soon noised abroad and one ;
Fifth, thatwith the intestines and other inner parts of cocks sac-
rificed to the demons, with " certain horrible worms," various
herbs, the nails of dead men, the hair, brains, and clothes of
children which had died unbaptized, and other things equally
disgusting, boiled in the skull of a certain robber who had been
3
26 - SORCERY AND MAGIC.
to a most miserable
husband. Sir John le Poer, was reduced
state of body by her powders, ointments,
and other magical oper-
her maid-servant, he had forcibly
ations but being warned by
;
a cowltre, upon
with which she rubbed a beam of wood called
"
'
To the house of William my soniie, "
Hie all the wealth of Kilkennie
town;'
of consecrated bread,
and that in her house was seized a wafer
on which the name of the devil was
Avritten.
expected. J he
had to contend with greater difficulties than he
proceeding was new, for hitherto in England sorcery
mode of
law had cog-
was looked upon as a crime of which the secular
ecclesiastical court and
nizance, and not as belonging to the ;
turned a deaf ear, and the bishop sent two apparitors with a for-
mal attendance of priests to the house of William Outlawe, where
Lady Alice was residing, to cite her in person before his court.
The lady refused to acknowledge the jurisdiction of the eccle-
siastical court in this case; and, on the day she was to appear,
the chancellor, Roger Outlawe, sent advocates, who publicly
pleaded her right to defend herself by her counsel, and not to
appear in person. The bishop, regardless of this plea, pro-
nounced against her the sentence of excommunication, and cited
her son, William Outlawe, to appear on a certain day, and an-
swer to the charge of harboring and concealing his mother in
defiance of the authority of the church.
On learning this, the seneschal of Kilkenny, Arnald le Poer,
repaired to the priory of Kells, where the bishop was lodged,
and made a long and touching appeal to him to mitigate his an-
ger, until at length, wearied and provoked by his obstinacy, he
left his presence with threats of vengeance. The next morning,
as the bishop was departing from the priory to continue his visi-
tation in other parts of the diocese, he was stopped at the en-
trance to the town of Kells by one of the seneschal's officers,
Stephen le Poer, with a body of armed men, who conducted him
as a prisoner to the castle of Kilkenny, where he was kept in
custody until the day was past on which William Outlawe had
been cited to appear in his court. The bishop, after many pro-
tests on the indignity offered in his person to the church, and on
the protection given to sorcerers and heretics, was obliged to
submit. It Avas a mode of evading the form of law, characteris,-
tic of an age in which the latter was subservient to force, and the
28 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
and that his conduct would not bear a very close examination, is
evident from the fact, that on more than one occasion in subse-
quent times, he was obliged to shelter himself under the protec-
tion of the king's pardon for all past offences. William Outlawe
now went to the archives of Kilkenny, and there found a former
deed of accusation against the bishop of Ossory for having de-
frauded a widow of the inheritance of her husband. The bishop's
party said that it was a cancelled document, the case having
been taken out of the secular court and that William had had
;
Sir Arnald le Poer and Lis friends had not been idle on their
part, and the bishop was next cited to defend himself against va-
rious charges in the parliament to be held at Dublin, while the
lady Alice indicted him in a secular court for defamation. The
bishop is represented as having narrowly escaped the snares
which were laid for him on his way to Dublin he there found
;
the Irish prelates not much incljned to advocate his cause, be-
cause they looked upon him as a foreigner and an interloper, and
he was spoken of as a truant monk from England, who came
thither to represent the " Island of Saints" as a nest of heretics,
and to plague them with papal bulls of which, they never heard
before'. It was, however, thought expedient to preserve the credit
of the church, and some of the more influential of the Irish ec-
clesiastics interfered to effect at least an outward reconciliation
between the seneschal and the bishop of Ossory. After encoun-
tering an infinity of new obstacles and disappointments, the lat-
ter at length obtained the necessary power to bring the alleged
oflenders to a trial, and most of them were imprisoned, but the
chief object of the bishop's proceedings, the lady Alice, had been
conveyed secretly away, and she is said to have passed the rest
of her life in England. When her son, William Outlawe, was
cited to appear before the bishop in his court in the church of
St. Mary at Kilkenny, he went " armed to the teeth" with all
sorts of armor, and attended with a very formidable company,
and demanded a copy of the charges objected against him, which
extended through thirty-four chapters. He for the present was
allowed to go at large, because nobody dared to arrest him, and
when the officers of the crown arrived they showed so openly
their favor toward him as to take up their lodgings at his house.
At length, however, having been convicted in the bishop's court
at least of harboring those accused of sorcery, he consented to
go into prison, trusting probably to the secret protection of the
great barons of the land.
The only person mentioned by name as punished for the ex-
treme crime of sorcery was Petronilla de Meath, who was, per-
haps, less provided with worldly interests to protect her, and
who appears to have been made an expiatory sacrifice for her
superiors. She was, by order of the bishop six times flogged,
and then, probably to escape a further repetition of this cruel and
degrading punishment, she made public confession, accusing not
only herself but all the others against whom the bishop had pro-
ceeded. She said that in all England, " perhaps in the whole
world," there was not a person more deeply skilled in the prac-
;
tices of sorcery than the lady Alice Kyteler, who had been their
mistress and teacher in the art. She confessed to most of the
charges contained in the bishop's articles of accusation, and said
that she had been present at the sacrifices to the demon, and had
assisted in making the unguents of the intestines of the cocks
offered on this occasion, mixed with spiders and certain black
worms like scorpions, v>^ith a certain herb called millefoil, and
other herbs and worms, and with the brains and clothes of a child
that had died without baptism, in the manner before related that ;
with these unguents they had produced various effects upon dif-
ferent persons, making the faces of certain ladies appear horned
like goats that she had been present at the nightly conventicles,
;
CHAPTER III.
The history of the lady Alice Kyteler is one of the most re-
markable examples that the middle ages have left us of the fise
which might be made of popular superstition as a means of op-
pression or vengeance, when other more legitimate means were
wanting. France and Italy had, however, recently presented a
case in which the belief in sorcery had been used as a wea^pon
against a still higher personage.
It is not necessary to enter into a detailed history of the quar-
rel between the French monarch, Philippe le Bel, and the pope,
Boniface VIII. It originated in the determination of the king to
check in his own dominions the power and insolence of the
church, and the ambitious pretensions of the see of Rome. In
1303, Philippe's ministers and agents, having collected pretended
evidence in Italy, boldly accused Boniface of heresy and sor-
cery and the king called a council at Paris, to hear witnesses
;
condemned in the duchy of Gueldies, in 1548, who had a demon confined in a ring
(dajmonem sibi esse inclusum annulo fatebatur) and he mentions as having come
;
within his own knowledge the case of a man who bought of a Spaniard a spirit
—
with a ring. (lb., lib. iii., c. 6.) Magical rings are by no means uncommon in the
cabinets of collectors,
HERETICS AT ORLEANS. 35
Nicholas III., he lay with the papal army before the castle of
Puriano, and he (brother Bernard) was sent to receive the sur-
render of the castle. He returned with the cardinal to Viterbo,
where he was lodged in the palace. Late one night, as he and
the cardinal's chamberlain were looking out of the window of
the room he occupied, they saw Benedict of Gaeta (which was
Boniface's name before he was made pope) enter a garden ad-
joining the palace, alone, and in a mysterious manner. He made
a circle on the ground with a sword, and placed himself in the
middle, having with him a cock, and a fire in an earthen pot (in
qiiadam olla terrea). Having seated himself in the middle of the
circle, he killed the cock and threw its blood in the fire, from
which smoke immediately issued, while Benedict read in a cer-
tain book to conjure demons. Presently brother Bernard beard
a great noise (rumorem raagnum), and was much terrified. Then
he could distinguish the voice of some one saj'ing, " Give us the
share," upon which Benedict took the cock, threw it out of the
garden, and walked away without uttering a v.'ord. Though he
met several persons on his way, he spoke to nobody, but pro-
ceeded immediately to a chamber near that of brother Bernard,
and shut himself up. Bernard declared that, though he knew
there Avas nobody in the room with the cardinal, he not only
heard him all night talking, but he could distinctly perceive a
strange voice answering him. This voice, of course, was that
of a demon.*
The same charge that had been brought forward to confound
Pope Boniface, was made a principal ground of persecution
against the templars. It was by no means the first time that
people who associated together thus in mutual confidence, or for
mutual support and protection, were branded with the accusation,
of holding intercourse with dem.ons, as we have already seen in.
the case of the Waldenses, who Avere hated for their heresy, and
the Rentiers, who were detested for their outrages. might We
easily collect other -examples. A French antiquary, M. Guerard,
has printed, in the cartulary of St. Peter's at Chartres, a docu-
ment of the earlier part of the eleventh century, which describes
a sect of heretics that had arisen in the city of Orleans, whose
proceedings are described as too horrible to be translated here
from the original Latin of the narrator. f Just two centuries later,
* All tlie documents relating to the trinl of this pnpe have been collected and
printed by Dupuj', in his " Histuire du Different de Boniface VIII. avec Philippe je
Bel," 4to. _ _
'-^
THE STEDINGERS. 37
vanished entirely from his heart." Then they all sat down to
the banquet, and when they rose again, there stepped out of a
statue, which was usually found in these schools, a black cat,
double the size of a moderate dog it came backward, with its
:
tail turned up. The novice first, then the master, and afterward
the others, one after another, kissed the cat as it presented it-
self and when they had returned to their places^ they remained
;
in silence, with their heads inclined toward the cat, and the mas-
ter suddenly pronounced the words, " Save us." He addressed
this to the next in order, and the third ansv/ered, " We know it,
lord ;" upon which a fourth added, " We
have to obey." After
this ceremony was performed, the candles were extinguished,
and they proceeded indiscriminately to acts which can hardly be
described. When this was over, the candles were again lighted,
and they resumed their places and then out of a dark corner of
;
the room cam.e a man, the upper part of whom, above the loins,
was bright and radiant as the sun, and the lower part was rough
and hairy like a cat, and his brightness illuminated the whole
room. Then the master tore off a bit of the garment of the nov-
4
38 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
ice, and said to the shining" personage, '• Mafiter, this is given to
me, and I give it again to ihee ;" to which he replied, " Tliou
hast served me well, and thou wilt serve me more and better
what thou hast given me, I give into thy keeping." Immediately
after this the shining personage vanished, and the meeting broke
up. The bull further charges these people with Avorshipping
Lucifer and contains other articles, evidently borrowed from
;
ths creed of the ancient gnostics and Manichseans, and their kin-
dred sects.
Such is the statement gravely made in a formal instrument by
the head of the church. At the first outbreak of the quarrel be-
tween the Stedingers and the see of Bremen, no one appears to
have thought of charging them with these horrible acts. They
-were invented only when the force which the archbishop could
command was not sufficient to reduce them and singularly ;
enough, when they had submitted, the charge of heresy, with all
its concomitant scandals, seems to have been entirely forgotten.
The archbishop of Bremen with the Stedingers, like Philippe le
Bel with, the templars, began by defaming the cause which he
wished to destroy. The prelate was incited by the love of tem-
poral authority, the king by the want of gold.
The military order of the templars was founded early in the
twelfth century, for the protection of the holy sepulchre its ;
lations which they are said to have held with the infidels, some
of them may have learned and adopted many doctrines and prac-
tices which were inconsistent with their profession.* It is cer-
*Some years ago,- Von Hammer Purgstall, in an elaborate essay publisbed in tbe
IFnndgiubeu des Orients, attempted to show from medieval nioniimente, that the
order of tiie templars was infested with gnosticism: but his error has been pointed
out by more tlian one subsequent writer. In fact, Von Hammer totally misunder-
stood "the character of tbe monuments on which he built his theory.
THE KNIGHTS-TEMPLARS. 39
tain, that before the end of the thirteenth century, rumors were
spread abroad of strange practices, and still stranger vices^ in
which the templars were said to indulge. The mysterious se-
crecy which they maintained, their pride, riches, and power,
were quite sufficient grounds in a superstitious age for such
charges. Their power made them an object of alarm to the sov-
ereigns of the va.rious countries in which they were established,
but their riches proved the cause of their fiaal doom.
The treasury of Philippe le Bel had been long exhausted, and
he had already tried a variety of expedients for the purpose of
raising money, when, in the first years of the fourteenth century,
he determined to recruit his finances by seizing the immense
property of the templars. The sinister reports, already believed
by many, were encouraged vague complaints against the corrup-
;
tions of the templars were carried to the pope, and the king of
France urged that an inquiry should be instituted. At length
one or more knights of the order were induced to make a volun-
tary confession of the enormities which they pretended were
practised by the templars in their secret conclaves, and then the
pontiff yielded to the urgent demands of King Philippe, and
agreed that they should be brought to a trial. The richest pos-_
sessions of the order were in France, for the Temple in Paris
was their grand central establishment and hence Philippe le
;
Bel assumed the right of directing and presiding over the process
which was to be carried on against them. He had offered him-
self as a candidate for admission into the order, and been refused.
'J'he knights themselves appear to have had a presentiment of
their impending fate, and to have been alarmed at the extent of
the popular feeling against them. An English templar meeting
a knight who had been newly received into the order, inquired
if he had been admitted, and the latter having replied affirma-
tively, he added, '" If you should sit on the top of the steeple of
St. Paul's in London, you should not be able to see greater mis-
fortunes than shall happen to you before you die." The rumors
against the order were increased by indiscreet confessions and
boasts of a few individuals, which seemed to give consistence to
them. A templar had said to one who did not belong to the
order, that in their chapter-general " there was a thing in secret
that if any one had the misfortune to see it, even were it the
king of France himself, nothing would hinder those of the chap-
ter from killing him, if it were in their power." Another said,
" We have three articles among us in our order, which none^
will ever know, except God and the devil, and we the brethren
40 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
of the order." Many stories were reported of individuals who
had been secretly put to death, because they had been witnesses,
by design or accident, of the secret ceremonies of the temple,
and of the terrible dungeons into which the chiefs of the- order
threw its disobedient members. One of the knights declared
that his uncle " had entered the order in good health, and cheer-
ful, with his dogs and falcons, and that in three days he was
dead ;" and one witness examined before the commission by
which the cause of the templars was tried, deposed that he had
heard several templars say that there were points beside those
mentioned in the public rules of the order, " which they would
not mention for their heads."
In the autumn of the year 1307, the king of France struck the
blow which he had been some time contemplating. He invited
the grand master, Jaques de Molay, and the chiefs of the order
in France, to Paris, under pretence of showing them his favor,
and received them with every mark of attachment. After hav-
ing acted as godfather to one of the king's sons, the grand master
was one of the pall-bearers at the burial of his sister-in-law on
the twelfth of October. Next day, Jaques de Molay, and a hun-
dred and forty templars who were in Paris on this occasion,
were arrested and thrown into prison. The same day thirty
were arrested at Beaucaire, and immediately afterward the tem-
plars in all parts of France were seized. The publication of
scandalous reports, the invectives of the monkish preachers, an
inflammatory letter of the king, every method was employed to
excite the people against them. The grand master, and soiue of
the principal brethren of the order arrested in Paris, were carried
before the imiversity, and examined on certain articles of accusa-
tion, founded, it was said, on the voluntary confession of two
knights of the order, a Gascon and an Italian, who, imprisoned
for some ofi^ences against the law^ had revealed the secrets of the
order. These pretended secrets were now made public, proba-
bly with much exaggeration and addition. The templars were
accused of renouncing the faith of the church, and of spitting and
trampling upon the cross, of using ceremonies of a disgusting
character at their initiations, and of secret practices of the most
revolting description. The general character of the act of accu-
sation against the templars bore a close resemblance to that of
the earlier bull against the Stedingers. It was said that they
worshipped the evil one in the shape of an idol, which they
looked upon as the patron of their order, and as the author of all
their riches and prosperity, and that they were individually pro-
—
THE KNIGHTS-TEMPLARS. 41
cates who would undertake their defence, and they were sub-
jected to hardships and tortures which forced many of them into
confessions dictated to them by their persecutors. During this
interval, the pope's orders were carried into other countries, or-
dering the arrest of the templars, and the seizure of their goods,
and everywhere the same charges were brought against them,
and the same means adopted to procure their condemnation,
although they were not everywhere subjected to the same sever-
ity as in France. At length, in the spring of 1316, the grand
process was opened in Paris, and an immense number of tem-
plars, brought from all parts of the kingdom, underwent a public
examination. A long act of accusation was read, some of the
heads of which were, that the templars, at their reception into
the order, denied Christ, and sometimes they denied expressly
all the saints, declaring that he was not God truly, but a false
prophet, a man who had been punished for his crimes that they ;
* Car encore faisoient-il pis, car uii enfant nouvel eng-endre d'un templier en una L
puoelle estoit cnit et rosli au fea, et toute la gr^se ostee ;et de celle estoit sacrfee
et ointe leur ydole. Les grandes Chrotdques ae St. Denis, ed. de Paalin Paris,
torn. Vj, p. 190.
42 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
were bound not to reveal that the brother who officiated at the
;
the order has its idol, which was a head, having sometimes three
faces, and at others only one or sometimes a human skull ;t
;
and by night, and placed a watch to prevent them from any da.n-
ger of interruption or discovery and that they believed the
;
or all of Ills garments (very rarely the latter), and then he was
kissed on various parts of tlae body. One of the knights exam-
ined, Guischard de Marzici, said he remembered the reception
of Hugh de Marhaud, of the diocese of Lyons, whom he saw
taken into a small room, which was closed up so that no one
conld see or hear what took place within but that when, after
;
some time, he was let out, he was very pale, and looked as
though he \^e.re troubled and amazed {fuit valde pallidus et qua-
si lurbatus et stupefactus). In conjunction, however, with these
strange and revolting ceremonies, there were others that showed
a reverence for the Christian church and its ordinances, a pro-
found faith in Christ, and the consciousness that the partaker of
them was entering into a holy vow.
M. Michelet, who has carefully investigated the materials re-
lating to the trial of the templars, has suggested at least an in-
genious explanation of these anomalies. He imagines that the
form of reception was borrowed from the figurative mysteries
and rites of the early church. The candidate for admission
inty the order, according to this notion, was first presented as a
sinner and renegade, in which character, after the example of
St. Peter, he denied Christ. This denial was a sort of panto-
mime, in which the novice expressed his reprobate state by spit-
ting on the cross. The candidate was then stripped of his pro-
fane clothing, received through the kiss of the order into a high-
er state of faith, and redressed with the garb of its holiness.
Forms like these would, in the middle ages, be easily misunder-
stood, and their original meaning soon forgotten.
Another charge in the accusation of the templars seems to
have been to a great degree proved by the depositions of wit-
nesses the idol or head which they were said to have worship-
;
According to another deposition, the idol had four feet, two be-
44 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
fore and two behind the one belonging to the order at Paris
;
was said to be a silver head, with two faces and a beard. The
novices of the order were told always to regard this idol as
their savior. Deodatiis JaR'et, a knight from the south of France,
who had been received at Pedenat, deposed that the person who
in his case performed the ceremonies of reception, showed him
a head or idol, which appeared to have three faces, and said,
" You must adore this as your savior, and the savior of the order
of the Temple," and that he was made to.worship the idol, say-
ing, " Blessed be he who shall save my soul." Cetus Ragonis,
a knight received at Rome in a chamber of the palace of the
Lateran, gave a somewhat similar account. Many other wit-
nesses spoke of having seen these heads, which, however, were,
perhaps, not shown to everybody, for the greatest number of
those who spoke on this subject, said that they had heard speak
of the head, but that they had never seen it themselves ; and
many of them declared their disbelief in its existence. A. friar
minor deposed in England that an English templar had assured
him that in that country the order had four principal idols, one
at London in the sacristy of the Temple, another at Bristelham,
a third at Brueria (Bruern in Lincolnshire), and a fourth beyond
the Humber.
Some of the knights from the south added another circum-
stance in their confessions relating to this head. A templar of
Florence, declared that, in the secret meetings of the chapters,
one brother said to the others, showing them the idol, " Adore
this head. This head is your God and your Mahomet." An-
other, Gauserand de Montpesant, said, that the idol was made in
the figure of Baffomet {in figuram Baffometi) ; and another, Ray-
mond Rubei, described it as a wooden head, on which was
painted the figure of Baphomet, and he adds, " that he worship-
ped it by kissing its feet, and exclaiming, Yalla," which he de-
scribes as " a word of the Saracens " {yerbum Saracenorum).
This has been seized upon by some as a proof that the templars
had secretly embraced Mahometanism, as Baifomet or Baphomet
is evidently a corruption of Mahomet ; but it must not be for-
gotten that the Christians of the West constantly used the word
Mahomet in the mere signification of an idol, and that it was the
desire of those who conducted the prosecution against the tem-
plars to show their intimate intercourse with the Saracens.
Others, especially Von Hammer, gave a Greek derivation of the
word, and assumed it as a proof that gnosticism was the secret
doctrine of the Temple.
'
THE KNIGHTS-TEMPLARS. 45
and both in Spain and in Portugal they only gave up their own
order to be admitted into others. The pope was offended at the
lenity shown toward them in England, Spain, and Germany.
The order of the temple was finally dissolved and abolished, and
its memory branded with disgrace. Some of the knights are
said to have remained together, and formed secret societies ;
from one of which it has been supposed that the modern free-
masons are derived. This, however, is a doubtful question,
which will perhaps never be cleared up.*
* The history of the suppression of the templars was treated in a large work by
the historian Dupuy, in which numerous documents relating to the process were
printed. M. Baynouard published, in 1813, a critical essay on the subject, in which
he put himself forward as the champion of tlie order. M. Michelet has more re-
cently printed the original examinations and other documents of the process in the
collection of historical documents published by direction of the French government
and he has treated the matter at considerable length and with much research in the
third volume of his " Histoire de France." A manuscript of the fourteenth century
in the Cottonian library in the British Museum, (MS Gotten. Julius B. XIL) con-
tains a considerable portion of the depositions of the witnesses examined in
England.
"
ENGUERRAND DE MARIGNY. 47
CHAPTER IV.
and liis brother, the archbishop of Sens, who came to him in his
prison, and there held counsel together on the best method of
effecting the deaths of the two counts. The ladies, after leaving
the prison, sent for a lame woman, who appears to have dealt in
alchemy qui fesoit 2'«r^and a mauvais garcoji, named Paviot,
and promised them a great sum of money if they would make
" certain faces whereby they might kill the said counts." The
" faces," or images, were accordingly made of wax, and baptized
in the devil's name, and so ordered " by art magic," that as they
dried up the counts would have gradually pined away and died.
But accidentally, as we are told, the whole matter came to the
ears of the count of Valois, who gave information to the king,
and the latter then consented to Enguerrand's death. Enguer-
rand and Paviot were hanged on one gibbet; the lame woman
was burnt, and the two ladies were condemned to prison. In.
1334, the lady of Robert count of Artois, and her son, were
thrown into prison on a suspicion of sorcery; her husband had
been banished for crimes of a different nature.
The chronicle of St. Denis, in which is preserved the account
of the trial of Enguerrand de Marigny, furnishes a singular in-
stance of the superstitious feelings of the age. In 1323, a Cis
tercian abbot was robbed of a very considerable sum of money.
He went to a man of Chateau-Landon, who had been provost of
that town, and was known by the name of Jehan le Prevost, to
consult on the best way of tracing the robbers, and by his advice
made an agreement with a sorcerer, who undertook to discover
them and oblige them to make restitution. A box was first made,
and in it was placed a black cat, with three days' provision of
bread sopped in cream, oil that had been sanctified, and holy
water, and the box was then buried in the ground at a cross
road, two holes having been left in the box, with two long pipes,
which admitted sufficient air to keep the cat alive. After three
days the cat was to have been taken out and skinned, and the
skin cut into thongs, and these thongs being made into a girdle,
the man who wore it, with certain insignificant ceremo_nies,
might call upon the evil one, who would immediately come and
answer any question he put to him.
It happened, however, that the day after the cat was buried, a
party of shepherds passed ov^r the spot with their sheep and
dogs, and the latter, smelling the cat, began to bark furiously
and tear up the ground with their feet. The shepherds, aston-
ished at the perseverance with which the dogs continued to
scratch the ground, brought the then provost of Chateau-Landon
THE MALADY OF CHARLES VL 49
time Lombardy, her native land, was celebrated above all other
parts for sorcerers and poisoners.* The wise ministers of the
court judged it necessary to set up one sorcerer against another,
and a man of this stamp, named Arnaud Guillaume, was brought
from Guienne to cure the king by his magic. Arnaud was in
every respect an ignorant pretender, but he possessed a book to
which he gave the strange title of Smagorad, the original of
which he said was given by God to Adam, to console him for
the loss of his son Abel and he pretended that any one who
;
possessed this book was enabled thereby to hold the stars in sub-
jection, and to command the four elements and all the objects
they contained. This man gave credit to the general opinion by
asserting positively that the king lay under the power of sorce-
ry but he said that the authors of the charm were working so
;
war and slaughter that the evil spirits had discovered to her a
;
sorcery she had gained the confidence and favor of the king
and the duke of Bourbon. She was gravely condemned on
these charges by the faculty of theology of the university of
Paris.
The belief in the nightly meetings, or sabbath of the witches,
had now become almost universal. Welearn that it was very
prevalent in Italy about the year 1400, and that many persons
were accused of having been present at them, and of having
denied their belief in the church, and done homage to the evil
one, with various detestable acts and ceremonies. It was half
a century later that this belief was made the ground-work of a
series of prosecutions in Artois and Flanders, the only object of
which appears to have been revenge and extortion. We know
nothing, however, of the events which preceded and led to them.
A particular account of the proceedings has been left us by a
contemporary writer, Jacques du Clerc, who appears to have
been present, and shorter accounts are preserved in one or
two of the old historians. The term Vauldois is here used
simply in the sense of a sorcerer.
At the time of which we are speaking, a Jacobin monk, named
Pierre le Broussart, was inquisitor of the faith in the city of Ar-
ras. About the feast of All-Saints, 1459, a young woman, some-
what more than thirty years of age, named Demiselle, who
lived by prostitution [a femme de follie vie), in the city of Douai,
was suddenly arrested at that place by Pierre le Broussart's or-
ders, and carried prisoner to Arras, where she was brought be-
fore the municipal magistrates, and by them, at the inquisitor's
demand, given over to the ecclesiastical arm, and thrown into
the bishop's prison. When she asked her persecutors why she
was thus treated, they only condescended to inform her that sh^^
would hear in good time, and one of them asked, by way of rail-
52 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
lery, if she did not know a hermit named Robinet de Vaulx. She
replied in consternation, " Et que checy ? cuicle ton que je sois
—
Vanldois F" " And what of that ? do they think me a witch?"
In fact, Robinet de Vaulx, who was a native of Artois, but
had lived for some time as a hermit in the province of Burgundy,
had recently been burnt for the crime of sorcery, or Vaulderie,
at Langres, and she could only suppose, by the allusion to his
name, that she was now accused of the same crime. Accord-
ingly, it was soon afterward made know^n that Pierre le Brous-
sart had been at the chapter-general of the friars' preachers (or
Jacobins), held that year at Langres, at which Robinet de Vaulx
had been condemned that on his trial, Robinet had confessed
;
d'Auvergne, the mistress of the new baths of the city and three
;
used their utmost diligence to bring this opinion into effect. Du-
bois declared publicly, that he knew things at which, if made
known, " people would be much abashed," and that he knew
that all who were accused were justly accused. He said that
bishops and even cardinals had been at the Vaulderie, or sab-
bath, and that the number of persons compromised in it was so
great, that, if they had only some king or great prince to head
them, they would rebel against the whole world. The bishop
of Bayrut had held the office of penitentier to the pope, and was
said to connaitre moult des choses ; and the historian tells us that
he had " such an imagination," that as soon as he saw people,
he at once judged and said whether they were Vauldois or not
(a veritable Matthew Hopkins of the fifteenth century). This
man and Dubois sustained, that when a man was once accused
of this crime, from that moment nobody, even father or mother,
or wife, or brother, or child, ought to take his part, or hold any
communication with him. At this time, another citizen of Arras,
a wood-merchant, was accused and thrown into prison ; and the
count of Estampes was prevailed upon to write a letter to the
vicars, rebuking them for their tardiness.
At length, a was raised in the public place of the city
scaffold
of Arras, and, amid an immense concourse of people, all the
prisoners were brought forth, each with a mitre on his head, on
which the devil was painted in the form in which he had ap-
peared at the Vaulderie. They were first exhorted by the in-
quisitors, and their confession was then read to them, in which
they avowed that when they wished to go to the Vaulderie, they
took a certain ointment which the devil had given them, rubbed
a little wooden rod and the palms of their hands with it, and
then placed the rod between their legs, upon which they were
suddenly carried through the air to the place of assembly. There
they found tables spread, loaded with all sorts of meats and with
wine, and a devil in the form of a goat, with the tail of an ape,
and a human countenance. They first did oblation and homage
to him, offering him their soul, or at least some part of their
body, and then, as a mark of adoration, kissed him behind, hold-
ing burning torches in their hands. The abbe de pen de sens
was stated to have held the oflice of master of the ceremonies at
these meetings, it being his duty to make the new-comers do
their homage. After this, they all trod on the cross, spit upon
it, in despitQ of Jesus and the Holy Trinity, and performed
WITCHCRAFT AT ARRAS. 55
enough to say, that when he sung these, he took off his hat at
the end, and said in a low voice, " Ne deplaise a mon rnaistreV
The woman Demiselle, who had been the first person accused,
was carried to Douai to be burnt there.
Hitherto, the accused had been all poor people, and chiefly
persons of very equivocal character. Their depositions, as far
as they compromised others, were kept in the greatest secresy ;
but it was after their execution that the real designs of the prose-
cutors began to show themselves. Late in the evening of the 16th
56 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
sons, all chosen apparently for their wealth, were arrested in the
course of the following days, among whom was the lord of
BeaufFort and the affair made so much noise, that
;
even in dis-
tant parts of France, a traveller who was known to have come
from Arras, could with difficulty find anybody who would give
him lodgings.
A
few of the persons thus seized were set at liberty, because
they would not confess, and only one, or two, or three witnesses
had deposed to having seen them af the sabbath but the rest ac-
;
ly their belief that this crime of Vaulderie was not real, but a
mere illusion while others as resolutely sustained the contrary.
;
confession, that lie had been acquainted with the three prostitutes
who had already perished at the stake, and that he had allowed
himself to be overcome by their wicked persuasions, in conse-
quence of which he had, in his own house, anointed a stick and
his own body with the ointment which they had given him, and
that he was immediately carried away to the wood of Moufflaine,
where he found a great multitude of persons of both sexes con-
gregated together. He said that the devil presided over the as-
sembly in the form of an ape, and that he had done homage to
him, and kissed one of his paws. He expressed the greatest
contrition for his crime, and begged for mercy of his judges.
Many' of the other prisoners sustained the utmost extremity of
torture, and still asserted their innocence ; but the confession of
the lord of Beauffbrt had its effect in giving credit to the accusa-
tions of the inquisitors, who declared publicly that antichrist was
born, and that the VauUlerie Avas preparing the way for him.
All the prisoners were found guilty, and the sentence was con-
firmed by the duke, but none of them were put to death. The
lord of Beauffort was condemned to ten years' imprisonment, and
to a heavy fine, which went chiefly to the church and to the in-
quisitors. The others were similarly punished with various de-
grees of fine and imprisonment.
A new incident in this tragedy occurred at the beginning of
the year 1461, which seemed like a judgment of Providence on
one of the most busy persecutors of the good citizens of Arras.
Master Jacques Dubois, dean of the church of Notre Dame, as
he v/as on his way to the town of Corbey, was suddenly struck
with a paralytic attack, which deprived him of his senses. He
was carried to Paris, but medical aid was of no avail. Pie re-
covered the use of his senses, but he remained in a state of ex-
treme bodily weakness, his members trembled and shook when
he attempted to use them and he lingered on miserably in his
chamber till the month of February, when he died. All who be-
lieved in the truth of the Vaulderie, said that he had been be-
witched by some of the sorcerers in revenge for the activity he
had shown in bringing them to justice.
But it turned out that the inquisitors, in their eagerness for the
plunder, had struck too high. The lord of Beauffort, indignant
at the treatment he had experienced, prosecuted his judges, and
carried his cause before the parliament of Paris, where it was
pleaded by his counsel in June, 1461.' The latter laid open,
with a very unsparing hand, the illegal and tyrannical conduct
of the inquisitors ; showed that the confessions of the prisoners
58 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
had been forced from them by the torture, and that they had been
allowed to make no defence and stated, that, at the trial, the
;
lord of Beauffort had himself been put to the torture, and persist-
ing in asserting his innocence, had been carried back to prison,
where he was Adsited by Master Jacques Dubois, the dean of
Ndtre Dame above mentioned, who had begged him on his knees
to make a confession and acknowledge that he had been present
at the Vauhlcrie, pretending that he made this request for the
sake of his children and family, as it was the only way in which
he could save him from the stake, in which case his property and
estates would be confiscated, and his children reduced to pover-
ty that when the lord of Beauffort represented to Dubois in re-
;
ply, that he was already bound by the oath he had taken to his
own innocence, and which he could not contradict, the dean told
him not to be uneasy on that point, as he would undertake to ob-
tain an absolution for him. It was now remembered that when
the first victims of the inquisitors were carried to execution,
they had asserted that all they had said in their confessions was
untrue, and that Jacques Dubois had promised them he would save
their lives if they would say it. The parliament at once acquit-
ted the lord of Beauffort and set him at liberty. The other pris-
oners were then sent for by the parliament, and their cases hav-
ing been severally examined into, they were also released from
the penalties to which
they had been condemned, and sent
home Thus ended the persecution of the sor-
to their families.
cerers of Arras, an extraordinary example of the lengths to
which people may be led by ignorance and superstition.
CHAPTER V.
the constant troubles and hostilities of the middle ages, the lead-
ing men in the municipal towns learned to be at once brave cap-
tains and skilful diplomatists and we shall see in the sequel that
;
ter was absent, and that he had left strict orders to open to no-
body. The bailiff then read the duke's order, but in vain where-
;
62 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
duke had taken up the cause of the town, he was not so rash as
to brave an authority against which he knew that he was power-
less. Accordingly, when the 10th of January arrived, he came
forward and surrendered himself a prisoner in the castle of Ta-
lant. The prosecution was now actively followed up as well by
the duke's bailiff as in the municipal court. When brought into
the court for examination, the lord of Mirebeau confessed the
crime with which he was charged but he refused, with the same
;
Moulins and ten ecus to send to his " chambriere" (we are not
;
told if this were the lady for whom the diamond was designed).
It is probable that the alchemist was now treated with rigor, and
that he considered his life in danger ; for these last transactions
occurred about the feast of All Saints, two or three days after
which, while Jean de Bauffremont was absent on a visit to Vil-
lers-les-Pots, he let himself down from one of the castle win
dows by means of his bed-clothes, about eleven o'clock at night,
passed the outer watch of the castle unperceived, and, wander-
ing till morning, reached the town of Dijon, where, as we have
already seen, he sought shelter in the convent of the Jacobins.
Jean de Bauffremont was immediately made acquainted with
Master Pierre's escape, and he hurried back in a fury to Mire-
beau, where the hiding-place of the fugitive was soon known.
According to his ov/n account of what followed, the lord of Mire-
beau repaired with a party of his friends and servants to Dijon,
;
and there gave information that a prisoner had escaped from his
castle, and was concealed by the Jacobins. The next day he
went to the monastery, had an interview with Pierre d'Estaing,
and, as he stated, obtained from him a promise to retm-n with him
to his castle and continue his alchemical operations, which seems
to have been the thing he had most at heart. Finding subse-
quently that Master Pierre was still unwilling to leave the sanc-
tuary, he represented to him the great expenses he had already
been at, and offered to pay for him into the hands of some person
in Dijon a thousand ecus as the reward for the completion of his
work, pledging himself that when it was finished, he would bring
him back in safety and restore him to the same place in which
he had now taken refuge. The alchemist seems now, however,
to have had no inclination to renew his experiments ;
perhaps
he had no great confidence in their success, and Jean de Bauffre-
mont, finding that he wonld no longer put any trust in his prom-
ises, told him openly that from that moment he considered all
their engagements broken, and that each must do his best for
himself. He then concerted measures for taking away the fugi-
tive by force, which, as we have already seen, were carried into
effect early on the following morning.
The legal investigation of this strange affair being brought to
a close by the confession of the principal offender, the mayor and
echevins demanded, in the name of the crown, that Jean de Bauf-
fremont should pay a fine of ten thousand ecus of gold, to be em-
ployed on the fortification of the town wall, and that his accom-
plices should be given up to the judgment of the municipal court.
The latter point was yielded at once, without any hesitation, and
on the 18th of March the court pronounced its sentence, accord-
ing to which the men who had aided the lord of Mirebeau in vio-
lating the sanctuary of the convent, were to be brought on a
Sunday, in their shirts and barefoot, each with a lighted taper in
his hand weighing three pounds, before the same gate of the
tovv^n through which Pierre d'Estaing had been carried away,
and there they were to cry " mercy" on their knees before the
mayor and echevins, who were to be summoned for the occasion,
and they were also to cry " mercy" to the whole town, at the same
time making a public confession of their crime they were then
;
to recite the amende honorable, after which each was to have one
of his hands cut off; they were next to carry the tapers to the
monastery of the Jacobins, and there offer them at the high altar
after which they were to pay a pecuniary fine proportionate to
their means, and to be banished from the town and jurisdiction
6*
66 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
mon council of the town had held two deliberations on the sub-
ject, he only received for answer that, since the cause was now
in the duke's court, and before his bailiff, it was not in the power
of the municipal body to enter upon his proposals. Jean de
Bauffremont then wrote direct to the duke of Burgundy, begging
in the most abject terms, that the duke would have compassion
upon him. Three months again passed away but at length, on ;
* The documents of this i-emarkable story are published in an article in the " Bib-
liotheque de I'Ecole des Cbartes."
— ;
CHAPTER VI.
meat could be kept for any length of time without tainting and ;
individual struck the archer, who shot him with the arrow, and
sent him into the fire, which was immediately extinguished.
Other writers added to this list of Virgil's wonders. But there
seems to have been a more explicit and connected story of
the enchanter Virgil, from what period it is difficult to say,
which appeared in a French history in the fifteenth century,
and was printed at the close of that century and the beginning
of the sixteenth. Two editions are known, and it has been re-
printed. About the same time, " the Life of Virgilius" appeared
in English, printed at Antwerp by John Doesborcke, about the
year 1508. The English story does not appear to have been
taken directly from the French, at least not from the printed edi-
tion, from which it differs considerably in some of its details and
in its extent. It gives us the full outline of the medieval belief
in Virgil the magician.
Vii'gil,according to this story was the son of a Roman sena-
tor of great wealth and power, who was at war with the emperor
of Rome. Virgil's birth was attended with prodigies, and he
soon showed so much aptitude for learning, that he was sent to
school at Toledo. Toledo, as I have already observed, was a
celebrated school of magic in the middle ages but the way in
;
was also Virgilius thereby also walkynge among the hylles all
about. It fortuned he spyed a great hole in the syde of a great
hyll, wherein he went so depe that he culde not see no more lyght,
and than he went a lytell ferther therein, and than he sawe som
lyght agayne, and than wente he fourth streyghte. And within
a lytyll wyle after he harde a voice that called, Virgilius, Vir-
'
gilius !' and he loked aboute, and he colde nat see nobodye.
Than Virgilius spake, and asked, Who calleth me V Than
'
harde he the voyce agayne, but he sawe nobody. Than sayd he,
' Virgilius, see ye not that lytyll bourde lyinge bysyde you there
marked with that worde V Than answered Virgilius, I see that '
borde well enough.' The voyce sayd, Doo awaye that bourd,
'
the fynd showe the bokes to hym, that he myght have and occu-
py them at his wyll. And so the fynd shewed hym, and than
Virgilius pulled open a bourde, and there was a lytell hole, and
thereat wrange the devyll out lyke a yeel [an eel], and cam and
stode byfore Virgilius lyke a bygge man. Thereof Virgilius was
astoned [astonished] and merveyled greatly thereof, that so great
a man myght come out at so lytell a hole. Than sayd Virgilius,
'Shulde ye well passe into the hole that ye cam out of?' Ye,— '
I shall well,' sayd the devyll. I holde the beste pledge that I
'
consente.' And than the devyll wrange hymselfe into the lytell
hole agen, and as he was therein, Virgilius kyvered the hole
ageyn, with the bourd close, and so was the devyll begyled, and
myght not there come out agen, but there abydeth shytte [shut]
styll therein. Than called the devyll dredefuUy to Virgilius, and
sayd, What have ye done V
'
Virgilius answered, Abyde there
'
care for the disheriting of one schoohuaster ? bid him take heed
and look to his schools, for he hath no right to any land here
about the city of Rome." And so the emperor put him off for
four or five years.
But Virgil, aware of his own powers, was determined not to
be thus deluded. He waited quietly till harvest, conciliating
his poor kinsmen and friends by his liberality, and then, when
corn and fruit were ripe, he threw, by art-magic, a mist over all
the lands of his inheritance, so that their new possessors could
not approach them, and so quietly gathered in the whole prod-
uce. " And when Virgil's enemies saw the fruit so gathered,
they assembled a great power, and came toward Virgilius to
take him and smite off his head and when they were assem-
;
bled, they were so strong that the emperor for fear fled out of
Rome, for they were twelve senators that had all the world un-
der them and if Virgilius had had right, he had been one of
;
the twelve, but they had disinherited him and his mother. And
when Virgilius knew of their coming, he closed all his lands
with the air round about all his land, that no living creature
might there come in to dwell against his [Virgil's] will or pleas-
ure."
This dispute led to still more important events. The empe-
ror took part with the senators, and they all joined in making
war upon Virgil, who
not only found safety in his enchantments,
but he at length compelled the emperor to restore him to his
rights. From this moment Virgil became the emperor's greatest
friend, and was the foremost in all his counsels.
" After that it happened that Virgilius was enamored of a fair
lady, the fairest in all Rome. Virgilius made a craft in necro-
mancy that told her all his mind when the lady knew his mind,
;
himself in any one of these corners, he heard all that was said
in the corresponding quarter of the city, so that no secret could
be kept from him. Thus was the state protected against do-
mestic enemies but it was requisite also to guard against out-
;
ward foes. And one day " the emperor asked of Virgilius how
that he might make Rome prosper and have many lands under
them, and know when any land would rise against them and ;
do.' And he made upon the capitolium, that was the town-
house, carved images of stone, and that he let call salvatio
Romce, that is to say, the salvation of the city of Rome. And
he made in the compass all the gods that we call mawmets and
idols, that were under the subjection of Rome and each of the
;
gods that were there had in his hand a bell, and in the middle
of the gods he made one god of Rome. And whensoever that
there was any land that would make any war against Rome,
then would the gods turn their backs toward the god of Rome ;
and then the god of the land that would stand up against Rome
* This was the most popular of the legends relating to the magician Virgil, and
is frequently alluded to in old writings. The story itself is generally told with
coarse details, better suited to those times than to the present. The reader may
be referred, for an example, to the account of this legend given in the Pastime of
Pleasure of Stephen Hawes (see the edition published by the Percy Society, page
139). This story was told of Hippocrates, or Ypocras, before it was fathered upon
Virgil.
DESTRUCTION OF SALVATIO ROM^. 73
clinked his bell so long that he had in his hand, till the senators
of Rome heard it, and forthwith they went there and saw what
land it was that would war against them, and so they prepared
them, and went against them, and subdued them."
This also was one of the most popular of the legends relating
to Virgil'the necromancer and we can easily imagine how vul-
;
have this night dreamed, that within the foot of a hill here with-
in Rome is a great pot with money Avill ye, lords, grant it to
;
us, and we shall do the cost to seek thereafter V And the lords
consented and they took laborers, and delved the money out
;
of the earth. And when it v/as done, they went another time to
the lords, and said, Worshipful lords, we have also dreamed
'
men, and went towards the place where it was, and when they
were come there, they sought in every place there about, and at
the last found the barrel full of golden pence, whereof they
were right glad. And then they gave to the lords costly gifts.
* We can not help -seeing how naturally legejids like this arose out of the fre-
quent discoveries of the concealed treasures of ancient times, and the constant re-
covery of antiquities from such rivers as the Tiber. The English antiquary will
understand this perfectly well. The Thames has always been rich in the produce
Which would give rise to such stories.
7
74 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
And then, to come to their purpose, they came to the lords again,
and said to them, Worshipful lords, we have dreamed again
'
they were glad, and got laborers, and began to dig under the
foundation of salvatio Romm ; and when they thought they had
digged enough, they departed from Rome, and the next day fol-
lowing fell that house down, and all the work that Virgilius had
made. And so the lords knew that they were deceived, and
were sorrowful, and after that had no fortune as they had afore-
times."*
After having contrived this defence against the outward
enemies of Rome, Virgil was desired by the emperor to invent
some method of clearing the city of the numerous banditti who
infested it by night, and who robbed and murdered great num-
bers of its inhabitants. He accordingly made images of cop-
per, and the emperor having issued a decree that no honest
people should appear out of their houses after a certain hour at
night, these images swept through the ci*y, destroying every liv-
ing being that was found in the streets. After an attempt to
evade these perilous enemies, the robbers were all killed or
driven away. Wecan easily understand how the popular ima-
gination foi-raed legends like this on the sculptures of bronze and
other material that must have been frequently discovered among
the ruins of ancient Rome. Virgil's next performance was a
sort of prototype of the electric light. " For profit of the com-
mon people, Virgilius, on a great mighty marble pillar, did make
a bridge that came up to the palace, and so went Virgilius well
up the pillar out of the palace. That palace and the pillar stood
in the middle of Rome and upon this pillar made he a lamp of
;
glass that alway burned without going out, and nobody might put
it out; and this lamp lightened over all the city of Rome from
the one corner to the other, and there was not so little a street
but it gave such a light that it seemed two torches there had
stand. And upon the walls of the palace made he a metal man
that held in his hand a metal bow that pointed ever upon the
lamp to shoot it out but alway burned the lamp and gave light
;
* This was one of the most popular of the earZy leg'ends relating to Virgil. It is
found in the early collection of stories entitled the Seven Sages, and frequently
elsewhere.
VIRGIL AND THE SULTAN'S DAUGHTER. . 75
over all Rome. And upon a time went the burgesses' daugliters
to play in the palace, and they beheld the metal man, and one
of them asked in sport, why he shot not and then she came to the
;
man, and with her hand touched the bow, and then the bolt [ar-
row] flew out and brake the lamp that Virgilius made. And it was
wonder that the maiden went not out of her mind for the great
fear she had, and also the other burgesses' daughters that were
in her company, of the great stroke that it gave when it hit the
lamp, and when they saw the metal man so swiftly run his way,
and never after was he no more seen. And this foresaid lamp
was abyding burning after the death of Virgilius by the space of
three hundred years or more."
After this, Virgil made himself a wonderful orchard or garden,
and placed in it an extraordinary fountain, with a cellar or vault
in which to store up his great wealth. " And he set two metal
men before the door to keep it, and in each hand a great ham^*
mer, and therewith they smote upon an anvil, one after the other,
insomuch that the birds that fly over heareth it, and by-and-by
falleth there down dead ; and otherwise had Virgilius not his
good [that is, wealth] kept." Another image made by Vir-
gil produced effects which were by no means agreeable to the
Roman ladies, in consequence of which his wife went secretly
and overthrew it and when he discovered this, " from thence-
;
father's directions, the princess took home with her some of the
fruit which her had given her to eat, from which the sul-
loA^er
tan concluded that she had been carried to some place " on the
side of France." After she had been frequently carried away in
this manner, the sultan, under pretence that he wished to ascer-
tain whence her lover came, persuaded the princess to give him
a sleeping-draught, and thus was the intruder captured, and thrown
into prison and it was judged that both he and his mistress
;
that bottle set he an egg and he hanged the apple by the stalk
;
upon a chain, and so hangeth it still. And when the egg stir-
reth, so should the town of Naples quake and when the egg ;
brake, then should the town sink. When he had made an end,
he let call it Naples. And in this tov/n he laid a part of his
treasure that he had therein and also set therein his lover, the
;
fair lady the sultan's daughter and he gave to her the town of
;
Naples, and all the lands thereto belonging, to her use and her
children."
With such a dower, it is not to be wondered if the lady soon
* The Nile. The Babylon in which the sultans dw^elt was old Cairo, Babylon
of Egypt.
t Thefoundation of the city of Naples upon eggB, and the egg on which its fate
depended, seem to have been legends generally current in the middle ages. They
are said still to exist among the lazzaroni. By the statutes of the order of the saint
Esprit au droit desir, instituted in 1352 (Montfaucon, Monumens de la Mon. Fr., vol.
ii., p. 329), a chapter of the knights was appointed to be held annually in custello
o-ate, or else not. And also about the same castle flowed there
a water, and it was impossible for any man there to have any
and on every side were there twelve men on each side still a
piece smiting with the flails, never ceasing, the one after the
other and no man might come in, without the flails stood still,
;
but he was slain. And these flails were made with such a gin
[contrivance] that Yirgilius stopped them when he list to enter
in thereat, but no man else could find the way.
And in this
castle put Virgilius part of his treasure privily and, when this ;
the town, and, when they were afore the castle, there saw the
men stand with iron flails in their hands sore smiting. Then
Virgilius said to his man, Enter you first into the castle.' Then
'
answered the man and said, If 1 should enter, the flails would
'
slay me.' Then showed Virgilius to the man of each side the
entering in, and all the vices [screws] that thereto belonged and ;
when he had shown him all the ways, he made cease the flails,
and went into the castle. And when they were both in, Virgil-
ius turned the vices again, and so went the iron flails as they
did afore. Then said Virgilius, '
My dear beloved
and he friend,
that above all men trust, and know most of my secrets ;' and
I
then let he the man into the cellar, where he had made a fair
lamp at all seasons burning. And then said Virgilius to the
man, See you the barrel that standeth here V And he said,
'
'
Ye must put me there first ye must slay me, and hew me
;
small to pieces, and cut my head in four pieces, and saU the
head under in the bottom, and then the pieces thereafter, and
my heart in the middle, and then set the barrel under the lamp,
that night and day therein may drop and leke and ye shall nine
;
days long once in the day fill the lamp, and fail not and when ;
this is all done, then shall I be renewed and made young again,
and live long time and many winters more, if that it fortune me
VIRGIL'S DEATH. 79
not to be taken of above and die.' * And when the man beard
his master Virgilius speak thus, he was sore abashed, and said,
'
That will I never while I live, for in no manner will I slay you.'
Then said Virgilius, Ye at this time must do it, for it shall be
'
gilius, and slew him, and when he was thus slain, he hewed
him in pieces, and salted him in the barrel, and cut his head in
four pieces as his master bade him, and then put the heart in
the middle, and salted them well and when all this was done,
;
he hung the lamp right over the barrel, that it might at all times
drop in thereto. And when he had done all this, he went out of
the castle and turned the vices, and then went the copper men
smiting with their flails as strongly upon the iron anvils as they
did before, that there durst no man enter; and he came every
day to the castle and filled the lamp, as Virgilius had bade him.
" And as the emperor missed Virgilius by the space of seven
days, he marvelled greatly where he should be become but ;
Virgilius was killed and laid in the cellar by his servant that
he loved so well. And then the emperor thought in his mind
to ask Virgilius's servant where Virgilius his master was and so ;
he did, for he knew well that Virgilius loved him above all men
in the world. Then answered the servant to the emperor, and
said, Worshipful lord, and it please your grace, I wot not where
'
he is, for it is seven days past that I saw him last; and then
went he forth I can not tell whither, for he would not let me go
with him.' Then was the emperor angry with that answer, and
said, 'Thou liest, false thief that thou art; but without thou
show me shortly where he is, I shall put thee to death.' With
those words was the man abashed, and said, Worshipful lord, '
seven days ago I went with him without the town to the castle,
and there he went in, and there I left him, for he would not let
me in with him.' Then said the emperor, Go with me to the '
same castle ;' and so he did and when they came afore the
;
castle and would have entered, they might not, because the flails
smote so fast. Theii said the emperor, Make appease these '
flails that we may come in.' Then answered the man, I know '
not the way.' Then said the emperor, Then shalt thou die.'
'
And then, .through the fear of death, he turned the vices and
made the flails stand still and then the emperor entered into
;
the castle with all his folk, and sought all about in every corner
" A similar mode of renovation occurs not unfrequently in medieval tales and
legends. It seems to have had its origin in the classic story of Medea.
80 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
after Virgilius,and at. the last they sought so long that they
came the cellar where they saw the lamp hang over the
into
barrel, where Virgilius lay indeed. Then asked the emperor
the man, who had made him so hardy to put his master Virgilius
so to death; and the man answered no word to the emperor.
And then the emperor, with great anger, drew out his sword,
and slew he there Virgilius' man. And when all this was done,
then saw the emperor and all his folk a naked child, three times
running about the barrel, saying the words, Cursed be the time
'
that ye came ever here !' And with those words vanished the
child away, and was never seen again ;and thus abode Virgil-
ivis in the barrel, dead. Then was the emperor very heavy for
the death of Virgilius, and also all Virgilius' kindred, and also
all the scholars that dwelt about the town of Naples, and in
especial the town of Naples, for because that Virgilius was the
founder thereof, and made it of great worship. Then thought
the emperor to have the goods and riches of Virgilius ; but there
were none so hardy that durst come in to fetch it, for fear of the
copper men that smote so fast with their iron flails and so;
CHAPTER VII.
of his knowl-
yet withal he requested him now to be no niggard
show his queen and him some of his skill. ' I were
ed<Te, but to
should
worthy of neither art nor knowledge,' quoth Friar Bacon,
'
'
to delight the sense of hearing,— I will
delight all your other
senses ere you depart hence.' So waving his wand again, there
was louder music heard, and presently five dancers entered, the
first like a court laundress, the second like
a footman, the third
like a fool.
like a usurer, the fourth like a prodigal, the fifth
BACON AT COURT. S3
Then waved he his wand again, and suddenly there was such a
smell, as if all the rich perfumes in the whole Avorld had been
then prepared in the best manner that art could set them out.
While he feasted thus their smelling, he waved his wand again,
and there came divers nations in sundry habits, as Russians, Po-
landers, Indians, Armenians, all bringing sundry kinds of furs,
such as their countries yielded, all which they presented to the
king and queen. These furs were so soft to the touch, that
they highly pleased all those that handled them. Then, after
some odd fantastic dances, after their country manner, they van-
ished away. Then asked Friar Bacon the king's majesty if that
he desired any more of his skill. The king answered that he
was fully satisfied for that time, and that he only now thought of
something that he might bestow on him, that might partly satisfy
the kindness that he had received. Friar Bacon said that he
desired nothing so much as his majesty's love, and if that he
might be assured of that, he would think himself happy in it.
'
For that,' said the king, be thou ever sure of it, in token of
'
which receive this jewel,' and withal gave him a costly jewel
from his neck. The friar did with great reverence thank his
majesty, and said, As your majesty's vassal you shall ever find
'
hath lost his way, or else Riet with some sport that detains him
so long I promised to be here before him, and all this noble as-
;
directed him
repair to the place appointed for his meeting
to
with the deny the devil's claim, and to refer for judg-
evil one, to
ment to the first person who should pass. " In the morning, af-
ter that he had blessed himself, he went to the wood, where he
found the devil ready for* him. So soon as he came near, the
devil said Now, deceiver, are you come ?
:
'
shall thou Now
see that I can and will prove that thou hast paid all thy debts,
and therefore thy soul belongest to me.' — ' Thou art a deceiver,'
said the gentleman, and gavest me money ' to cheat me of my soul,
for else why wilt thou be thine
— own judge ? — let me have some
others to judge between us.' Content,' said the devil, take
whom thou wilt.' — '
'
next man that cometh this way.' Hereto the devil agreed. No
sooner were these words ended, but Friar Bacon came by, to
whom this gentleman spoke, and requested that he would be
judge in a weighty matter between them two. The friar said he
was content, so both parties were agreed: the devil said they
were, and told Friar Bacon how the case stood between them in
this manner. Know, friar, that I, seeing this prodigal like to
'
starve for want of food, lent him money, not only to buy him vic-
tuals, but also to redeem his lands and pay his debts, condition-
ally, that so soon as his debts were paid, that he should give him-
self freely to me to this, here is his hand,' showing him the
;
bond now my time is expired, for all his debts are paid, which
:
'
tell me' —
speaking to the gentleman
'
—
didst thou never yet give '
;
'
the devil any of his money back, nor requite him in any ways V
— 'Never had he anything of me as yet,' answered the gentle-
man. Then never let him have anything of thee, and thou art
'
Vi^as thy bargain never to meddle with him so long as he was in-
debted to any now, how canst thou demand of him anything
;
the time until it was nine or ten of the clock in the night then be-
;
and suddenly about the circle run the devil, as if a thousand wag-
ons had been running together on paved stones. After this, at
the four corners of the vv^ood it thundered horribly, with such
lightning as if the whole world to his seeming had been on fire.
Faustus all this while, half amazed at the devil's so long tarry-
ing, and doubting whether he were best to abide any more such
horrible conjurings, thought to leave his circle and depart, where-
upon the devil made him such music of all sorts, as if the nymphs
themselves had been in the place. Whereat Faustus revived,
and stood stoutly in the circle, expecting his purpose, and began
again to conjure the spirit Mephistophiles in the name of the
prince of devils, to appear in his likeness whereat suddenly
;
over his head hung hovering in the air a mighty dragon. Then
calls Faustus again after his devilish manner at which there
;
was a monstrous cry in the wood, as if hell had been open, and
all the tormented souls cursing their condition. Presently, not
three fathoms above his head, fell a flame in manner of lightning,
and changed itself into a globe yet Faustus feared it not, but
;
did persuade himself that the devil should give him his request
before he would leave. Then Faustus, vexed at his spirit's so
long tarrying, used his charm, with full purpose not to depart be-
fore he had his intent and crying on Mephistophiles the spirit,
;
head of the first, and presently there v/as a lily in the glass of
distilled water, where Faustus perceived this lily as it Avas
springing up, and the chief juggler named it the tree of life.
90 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
Thus dealt he with the first, making the barber wash and comb
his head, and then he set it on again presently the lily vanished
;
away out of the water hereat the man had his head whole and
;
sound again. The like did he with the other two and as the
;
turn and lot came to the chief juggler, that he also should be be-
headed, and that his lily was most pleasant, fair, and flourishing
green, they smote his head off, and when it came to be barbed
[that is, shaA'^ed], it troubled Faustus his conscience, insomuch
that he could not abide to see another do anything, for he thought
himself to be the principal conjurer in the world wherefore Dr.
;
Faustus went to the table whereat the other jugglers kept that
lily, and so he took a small knife and cut off the stalk of the
lily, saying to himself, '
None of them shall blind Faustus.' Yet
no man saw Faustus to cut the lily but when the rest of the
;
By this means the juggler was beguiled, and so died in his wick-
edness yet no one thought that Dr. Faustus had done it."
;
It was about this time that Faustus had a fit of repentance, for
which, he was severely rebuked by his spirit Mephistophiles,
who forced him to sign a new bond with the evil one. From
this time he became more headstrong and depraved than ever,
and, to use the words of the history, " he began to live a swinish
and Epicurean life." He now caused Mephistophiles to bring
him the fair Helen of Troy, with whom he fell violently in love,
and kept her during the rest of his life as his mistress but she,
;
and a child she bore him, vanished together on his death. This
was not long in approaching, and when his last day was at hand,
he invited his fellow-students to a supper, and gave them a moral
discourse on his own errors, and an urgent warning to avoid his
example. " The students and the others that were there, when
they had prayed for him, they wept, and so went forth; but
Faustus tarried in the hall and when the gentlemen were laid
;
in bed, none of them could sleep, for that they attended to hear
if they might be privy of his end. It happened that between
twelve and one o'clock at midnight there blew a mighty storm
of wind against the house, as though it would have blown the
foundation thereof out of its place. Hereupon the students be-
gan to fear, and go out of their beds, but they would not stir out
of the chamber, and the host of the house ran out of doors, think-
ing the house would fall. The students lay near unto the hall
wherein Dr. Faustus lay, and they heard a mighty noise and
hissing, as if the hall had been full of snakes and adders. With
DEATH OF DR. FAUSTUS. 91
tliat the hall-door flew open wherein Dr. Faustus was ; then he
began to cry for help, saying, Murther murther !' but it was
'
!
with a half voice and very hollow shortly after they heard him
;
no more. But vi^hen it was day, the students, that had taken no
rest that night, arose and went into the hall in the which they
left Dr. Faustus, where, notwithstanding, they found not Faustus,
but all the hall sprinkled with blood, the brains cleaving to the
wall, for the devil had beaten him from one wall against another ;
in one corner lay his eyes, in another his teeth ; a fearful and
pitiful sight to behold. Then began the students to wail and
weep for him, and sought for his body in many places. Lastly,
they came into the yard, where they found his body lying on the
horse-dung, most monstrously torn, and fearful to behold, for his
head and all his joints were dashed to pieces. The forenamed
students and masters that were at his death, obtained so much
that they buried him in the village where he was so grievously
tormented."
Such was the end which it was believed awaited the magi-
cians who entered into a direct compact with the evil one. The
history of Dr. Faustus has been the delight and wonder of thou-
sands in various countries and through several ages. The pop-
ularity of the book was so great, that another author undertook
tocompile a continuation. Faustus, it was pretended, had left
a familiar servant, named Christopher Wagner, with whom he
had deposited his greatest secrets, and to whom he had left his
books and his art. The exploits of Wagner form what is called
the second part of Dr. Faustus, which seems to have been com-
piled in England, and was published long subsequent to the first
part. Wagner is made to call up the spirit of his master Faus-
tus, and compel him to serve as his familiar. The book contains
a repetition of the same descriptions of exorcisms which had
been used by Faustus toward Mephistophiles, and of similar
exploits.
Theforegoing are types of the popular belief during many cen-
turies. They picture to us the notion of the. magician as it ex-
isted in people's imagination. We must now return to the reality
of these superstitions, as it is presented to us by the history of
past ages.
SORCERY AND MAGIC.
CHAPTER VIII.
further, that they had devoted their own souls to the demon, to
whom also they had done personal homage, after having tram-
pled underfoot the figure of the cross. For these offences they
were judged by the most learned theologians to be worthy of
being burnt at the stake.
In the earlier period of the history of witchcraft in Germany,
we find no traces of the more repulsive details of the sabbath of
the sorcerers; and it is, therefore, probable that they were intro-
duced there perhaps not before the fourteenth century, and that
even during that century they did not constitute an article of the
general belief. They appear to have originated in France and
Italy, where there is reason for believing, that down to a late pe-
riod some of the worst sects of the ancient Gnostics retained a
footing. These sects appear to have been justly accused with
the celebration of infamous rites, or rather orgies, which the po-
pish church found it convenient to lay to the charge of all whom
it thought right to class under the title of heretics. The
church, it is well known, claimed the right of judging witch-
craft, 'by considering it as a heresy, or as akin to heresy, and
it is probable that by the confusion of ideas thus produced, the
94 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
when the sorcerer was seized, and made a full confession of his
evil practices, no lizard was found in the spot indicated, but as it
was supposed during so long a period of time to have been en-
tirely decomposed by decay, all the dust under the door was care-
SOKCERY IN SWITZERLAND. 95
fully carried away, and from that time the inmates were relieved
from this severe visitation. They sometimes raised illicit love ;*
and at others, hindered the consummation of marriage, excited
hatred between man and wife, and raised dissensions between
the dearest friends. They drove horses mad, and made them
run away with their riders. They conveyed away the property of
others into their own possession though, in most of the examples
;
* This singular writer, among his remedies, indicates as the most effective one
against tlie goadiugs of the passion of love in young men, to frequent the company
of old women! Vetularum aspectus et coUoquia amorem excutiunt.
96 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
ly possessed by the evil one, and too obstinate in her ill ways,
to confess, although I know we
are both witches."
that The in-
quisitor ordered Stadelin to be burnt because he had confessed,
and his wife because she would not confess for so far the man's
;
assertion was verified, that the poor woman denied all he said,
and was dragged to the stake, obstinately persisting in the dec-
laration that she was innocent.
Stadelin confessed that he had been instrumental in perpetra-
ting much mischief by means of thunder and lightning. The
way, he said, in which they effected this, was to go to a place
where there were cross-roads, and there call upon a demon,
who immediately came. They then sacrificed to him a black
chicken, and made their ofiering by tossing it up in the air.
This was followed almost immediately by a violent storm, which
was most destructive in the places that had been pointed out to
the demon's anger. It may be observed, that the belief that
storms were the work of demons, who were supposed to be pres-
ent in them, was universally current during the middle ages.
At this period, the demons, contrary to their practice in a la-
ter age, seem to have exerted -themselves in the defence of their
worshippers, when the latter were in danger of falling into the
hands of justice. The evil one generally used his power to en-
able his votaries to support their tortures without confessing.
When the order was given to arrest Stadelin, the officers sent
in seai'ch of him felt such a sudden numbness in their hands
and members, that they were a long time before they could take
hold of him.
THE INQUISITOR PUNISHED. 97
he had hardly pronounced the words " in the devil's name !" (m
nomine diaboU), when he suddenly found himself in utter dark-
ness, amid dreadful noises, and he was struck down with so
much force that he remained senseless on the steps, until his
servant, who slept near, roused by the unusual noise, came to
his assistance. For a time, the inquisitor seemed to be entirely
deprived of his reason, and it was three weeks before he re-
gained the perfect use of his members.
Thecause of this singular visitation Vv^as accidentally brought
to light some time afterward. A man of Friburg, who was
looked upon suspiciously in his own neighborhood, went on
business to Berne, and sat in a tavern, drinking with some of
the citizens. Suddenly he appeared abstracted, and exclaimed,
" I see so-and-so [mentioning a man's name] creeping round my
house, and stealing the lines I had laid in the river to catch fish."
This was second-sight, or, as the mesmerist would say, clair-
voyance, for the man's house was distant about six German miles,
or, nearly thirty English miles, from Berne. The persons who
were sitting by, looked at him with astonishment; and, after the
first moment of surprise, taking him for a sorcerer, they seized
upon him, and carried him before the inquisitor. The latter put
him to the torture during two days, without effect but, on the
;
I., then at Brussels, took the papal inquisitors, sent to put down
witchcraft in Germany, under his protection. Nevertheless, the
archduke Sigismund, who was prince of the Tyrol, and a man
above the ordinary prejudices of his time, at first gave what
protection he could to the miserable objects of persecution ; but
he was at length obliged to allow himself to be carried away by
the popular torrent. He employed Ulric Molitor to compose a
dialogue on the subject, which was printed under the title De
PytJionicis Mulieribus, at Constance, in the beginning of 1489.
In this tract, the archduke Sigismund, Ulric Molitor, and a citi-
zen of Constance, named Conrad Schak, are introduced as the
interlocutors, Sigismund arguing against the common belief. In
conclusion, the witches are judged worthy of execution, although
the opinions here expressed as to witchcraft itself are by no
means those of the inquisitors. From this time there arose two
parties, one of which sustained that all the crimes imputed to
the witches were real bona fide acts, while the other asserted
that many of the circumstances to which they were made to con-
fess, such as their being carried through the air, and their pres-
ence at the sabbath, were mere delusions, produced on their im-
agination by their master the devil. Both parties, however,
agreed in general to the condemnation of the offenders.
Under the papal inquisitors appointed by the bull of .1484, the
persecution of people accused of witchcraft was carried on with
a fury which can only be compared with what took place in dif-
ferent countries at the latter part of the end of the following cen-
tury. Hundreds of wretched indiyiduuls were publicly burnt at
the stake within the space of a few years. As an apology for
these proceedings, two of the inquisitors, Jacob Sprengar and
(as the other is named in Latin) Henricus Institor, employed
themselves in compiling a rather large volume under the title
Malleus Maleficarum, which was printed before the end of the
fifteenth century. In this celebrated work, the doctrine of witch-
craft was first reduced to a regular system, and it was the model
and groundwork of all that was written on the subject long after
the date which saw its first appearance. Its writers enter large-
ly into the much-disputed question of the nature of demons set
;
forth the causes which lead them to seduce men in this manner
and show why women are most prone to listen to their pro-
posals, by reasons which prove that the inquisitors had but a
mean estimate of the softer sex. The inquisitors show the most
extraordinary skill in explaining all the difficulties which seemed
to beset the subject; they even prove to their entire satisfaction
100 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
that persons who have become witches may easily change them-
selves into beasts, particularly into wolves and cats and after the
;
they saw her carried through the air. The inquisitors, however,
confess, that the witches were sometimes carried away, as they
THE INVOKER OF RAIN. 101
tors, put to the torture until she confessed, and then burnt. The
child was spared on account of its age, but as a measure of pre-
caution, it was placed in a nunnery.
The witches of the Malleus Malleficaru7n appear to have been
more injurious to horses and cattle than to mankind. A witch at
Ravenspurg confessed that she had killed twenty-three horses by
f
sorcery. Weare led to wonder most at the ease with which
people are brought to bear witness to things utterly beyond the
limits of belief. A man of the -name of StaufF, in the territory
of Berne, declared that when pursued by the agents of justice,
he escaped by taking the form of a mouse and persons were
;
found to testify that they had seen him perform this transmuta-
tion.
The latter part of the work of the two inquisitors gives mi-
nute directions for the mode in which the prisoners are to be
treated, the means to be used to force them to a confession, the
degree of evidence required for conviction of those who would
not confess, and the whole process of the trials. These show
sufficiently that the unfortunate wretch who was once brought
before the inquisitors of the holy see on the suspicion of sorcery,
however slight might be the groimds of the charge, had very
small chance of escaping out of their claws.
The Malleus contains no distinct allusion to the proceedings
at the sabbath. The witches of this period differ little from
those who had fallen into the hands of the earlier inquisitors of
Constance. We
see plainly how, in most countries, the myste-
riously indefinite crime of sorcery had first been seized on to ruin
the cause of great political offenders, until the fictitious import-
WITCHCRAFT IN SCOTLAND. 103
CHAPTER IX.
until the sixteenth century, when they are found in nearly the
same shape in which they had appeared in England in the twelfth
and thirteenth centuries. In Scotland, witchcraft had not been
magnified and modified by the systematical proceedings of eccle-
siastical inquisitors, and it is therefore found in a much less
sophisticated form.
In Scotland, as in other parts of Europe, witchcraft first makes
its appearance in judiciary proceedings as an instrument of polit-
ical or personal animosity, and was used where other grounds
of accusation were too weak to effect the objects of the accuser.
In the latter half of the fifteenth century, the earl of Mar, brother
of James III., was accused of consulting witches and sorcerers,
in order to shorten the king's days, and he was bled to death in
his own lodgings, whout even being brought to a trial. Twelve
104 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
simple case of the latter which we find in the records of the high
court of justiciary in Scotland, is that of Agnes Mullikine, alias
Bessie Boswell, of Dumfermling, who, in 1563, was "banished
and exiled" for witchcraft, a mild sentence which seldom occurs
in subsequent times. The records just alluded to, published a
few years ago by Mr. Robert Pitcairn, will be our chief guide in
the history of sorcery in Scotland.
In Scotland, the witches received their power, not from the
evil one, but from the " fairy folk," with whom, at least until a
late period, their connection was more innocent, and was char-
acterized by none of the disgusting particularities which distin-
guished the proceedings of their sisters on the continent. Ac-
cording to an old and popular ballad^as ancient perhaps as the
fourteenth century — the celebrated Thomas of Ercildowne ob-
tained his supposed skill in prophecy from his connection with
the queen of faery. In 1576, a very extraordinary case was
ti'ied before the high court, in which the chief actress was known
as Bessie Dunlop, a native of thes county of Ayr, and wife of a
cottager named Andro Jak. In her confession, this woman sta-
led that she was one day going from her own house to the yard
of Monkcastell, driving her cows to the pasture, and weeping
" for her cow that was dead," her husband and child that
were both lying ill of an epidemic, and herself newly risen from
child-bed, when a strange man met her by the way, and saluted
her Avith the words, " Gude day, Bessie !" She returned his
salutation, and in answer to his inquiries, told him of her trou-
bles, upon which he informed her, that her child, as well as the
sick cow, and two of her sheep, would die, but that her " gude
man" should soon recover, all of which took place as he fore-
told. She described her interrogator as " ane honest wele-el-
derlie man, gray bairdit \hearded\, and had ane gray coilt with
Lumbart slevis of the auld fassoun ane pair of gray brekis
;
black bonet his heid, cloise behind and plane befoir, with
oii
silkin laissis drawin throw the lippis thairof and ane quhyte
;
wand in his hand." This personage told her at last that he was
one Thome Reid, " quha diet [cliedj, at Pinkye." (Sept. 10,
1547.) And this account was confirmed by the manner in which
he disappeared through the yard of Monkcastell " I thocht he
:
gait in at ane narroware hoill of the dyke, nor ony erdlie man
culd haif gane throw ; and swa I was sumthing fleit [aghasl].^^
It appears that Thome Reid had been a turned-off servant of the
laird of Blair, and Bessie Dunlop was once sent on a message
to his son, who inherited his name, and had succeeded to his
place in the household of the laird of Blair, and who fully con-
firmed Thome's story, that he had gone to the battle of Pinkye,
and fallen in that disastrous conflict.
The next time Thome Reid appeared to Bessie, as she was
going between her own house and the thorn of Dawmstarnok,
and he then declared more openly his ultimate designs. After
remaining some time with her, Thome asked her pointedly if
she v/ould belief in him, to which she replied with great naivete,
" She would believe in anybody who did her good." Thome
had hitherto spoken like a good Christian, and at their first in-
terview he had addressed her in the name of the Blessed Virgin,
but now, encouraged by her answer, he boldly proposed to her
that she should " deny her Christendom, and the faith she took at
the baptismal font," in return for Avhich she should have goods
and horses and cows in abundance, besides other advantages.
This, however, she' refused indignantly, and her tempter went
away, " something angry" with her.
Thome's visits generally occurred at mid-day, not at the still
hour of night, and he seemed little embarrassed by the presence
of other company. Shortly after the interview just mentioned,
he visited her in her own house, where she was in company
with her husband and three tailors, and, unseen by these, he
took her by the apron and led her to the door, and she followed
him up to the " hill-end," and there he told her to remain quiet
and speak not, whatever she might hear and see. She then
advanced a little, and suddenly saw twelve persons, eight women
—
and four men " the men were clad in gentlemen's clothing, and
the women had all plaids round about them, and were very
seemdy like to see, and Thome was Avith them." They bade her
sit down, and said, "Welcome, Bessie, wilt thou go with us?"
but as she had been warned, she returned no answer, and, after
holding a consultation among themselves, which she did not hear,
106 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
they disappeared in a " hideous" whirlwind. Shortly afterward
Thome returned, and' told her the persons she had seen were
the " good wights," who dwelt in the court of Elfen, who came
there to invite her to go with them, and he repeated the invita-
tion very pressingly, but she answered that " she saw no profit
to gang that kind of gates, unless she knew wherefore."
Then he said, " Seest thou not me, worth meat and worth
clothes, and good enough like in person ?" and he promised to
make her far better off than ever she was.
—
Her answer, however, was still the same she dwelt with
her own husband and " bairns," and could not leave them and —
so he " began to be very crabbed with her," and told her that if
she continued in that mind she would get little good of him.
His anger, however, appears to have soon subsided, and he con-
tinued to come at her call, and give her his advice and assistance,
always treating her with respect, for she declared that the great-
est liberty he had taken with her was to draw her by the apron
when he would persuade her to go with him to fairy-land. She
said that she sometimes savf him in public places, as in Edin-
burgh streets on a market-day, and that on one occasion, when
she was " gone a-field" v/ith her husband to Leith, she went to
tie her nag to the stake by Restalrig loch, and there came sud-
denly a company of riders by " that made a din as though heaven
and earth had gone together," and immediately they rode into
the loch with a " hideous rumble." Thome came to her and
told her that it was the " good wights," who were taking their
ride in this world. On another occasion Thome told her the
reason -of his visit to her he called to her remembrance that
;
one day when she was ill in child-bed, and near her time of de-
livery, a stout woman came in to her, and sat down on the form
beside her, and asked a drink of her, and she immediately gave
it; this he said was his mistress, the queen of Elfen, v/ho had
commanded him to wait upon her and " do her good."
The whole extent of Bessie Dunlop's witchcraft consisted in
curing diseases and recovering stolen property, which she did
by the agency of her unearthly visiter, who gave her medicines,
or showed her how to prepare them. Some of her statements
appear to have been confirmed by other witnesses and however
;
of claret wine mixed with her drugs, which the worthy prelate
drank off at two draughts IAlison, in the course of her exam-
ination, gave many curious anecdotes of the fairy people, with
108 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
them she saw several of her acquaintance, who had been carried
to Elfland, when their friends imagined they were dead and
gone to heaven and she learned from her kinsman, Sympsoune,
;
that a tithe of them was yearly given up to hell, and had been
warned by him from time to time not to go with them at certain
periods, lest she should be made one of the number. This wo-
man also was convicted and burnt [convicta et combusta).
The next case, or rather two cases, of witchcraft in the Scot-
tish annals, is of a more fearful and more criminal character than
either of the preceding. The chief persons implicated were
Katherine Munro lady Fowlis, wife of the chief of the clan of
Munro, and Hector Munro, the son of the baron of Fowlis by a
former wife. The lady Fowlis was by birth Katharine Ross of
Balnagown and, in consequence of family quarrels and intrigues,
;
she had laid a plot to make away with Robert Munro, her hus-
band's eldest son, in order that his widow might be married to
her brother, George Ross, laird of Balnagown, preparatory to
which it was also necessary to effect the death of the young lady
Balnagown. The open manner in which the proceedings of
lady Fowlis were carried on, affords a remarkable picture of the
barbarous state of society among the Scottish clans at this pe-
rked. Among her chief agents were Agnes Roy, Christiane
Ross, and Marjory Neyne Mac Aliester, the latter better known
by the name of Loskie Loncart, and all three described as " no-
torious witches ;" another active individual was named William
Mac Gillevordame and there were a number of other subordi-
;
images of the two individuals who were to die, for the purpose
of bewitching them. Poison was also adopted as a surer means
of securing their victims, and the cook of the laird of Balnagown
was bribed to their interests. The deadly ingredients were ob-
tained by William Mac Gillevordame, at Aberdeen, under pre-
tence of buying poison for rats it was administered by the cook
;
and vexacioun that was on the young lady Balnagown and hir
company." However, although the victim was thrown into a
miserable and long-lasting illness, the poison did not produce
immediate death, as was expected. From various points in the
accusation, it appears that the conspirators were actively em-
ployed in devising means of effecting their purpose from the pe-
riod mentioned above till the Easter of the following year, by
which time the deadly designs of the lady Fowlis had become
much more comprehensive, and she aimed at no less than the
destruction of all the former family of her husband, that their in-
heritance might fall to her own children. In May, 1577, Wil-
liam Mac Gillevordame was asked to procure a greater quantity
of poison, the preceding dose having been insufficient but he re-
;
that the laird was, to a certain degree, acquainted with their pro-
ceedings. A potion of a much more deadly character was now
prepared, and two individuals, the nurse of the lady Fowlis and
a boy, were killed by accidentally tasting of it but we are not
;
eight times with the elf arrow-head, but always missed it and;
lady Fowlis shot two shots at lady Balnagown, and Loskie Lon-
cart shot three at Robert Munro, but neither of them were suc-
cessful, and the two images were accidentally broken, and thus
the charm was destroyed. They now prepared to try poison
again, but Christiane Ross, who had been present at the last
meeting, was arrested toward the end of November, and, being
put to the torture, made a full confession, which was followed by
the seizure of some of her accomplices, several of whom, as well
as Christiane Ross, were " convicted and burnt." The lady
Fowlis tied to Caithness and remained there nine months, after
which she was allowed to return home. Her husband died in
1588, and was succeeded by Robert Munro, who appears to
have revived the old charge of witchcraft against his stepmother ;
further counsel, and came at last to the conclusion that the per-
son who must thus be his substitute was George Munro, the
eldest son of the lady Fowlis, whose trial has just been de-
scribed. The ceremonies which followed are some of the most
extraordinary in the whole range of the history of these dark
superstitions. Messengers were sent out to seek George Munro,
the intended victim, in every direction, and he, " as a loving
brother," suspecting no evil, came to where Hector lay, on the
fifth day. By the express direction of the witch, the latter was
to allow none to enter the house until after his brother's arrival
he was to receive his brother in silence, give him his left hand
and take him by the right hand, and not speak till he had first
spoken to him. Hector Munro followed these instructions to
the letter; George Munro was astonished at the coldness of his
reception, compared with the pressing manner in which he had
been invited, and he remained in the room an hour before he
uttered a word. George at last asked him how he did, to which
Hector replied, " The better that you have come to visit me,"
and then relapsed into his former silence. This, it appears,
was a part of the spell. At one o'clock the same night, Marion
Mac Ingaruch, the presiding sorceress, with certain of her ac-
complices, provided themselves with spades, and went to a
piece of earth at the seaside, lying between the boundaries of
the lands of two proprietors, and dug a grave proportionate to
the size of the sick man, and took off' the sod. She then re-
turned to the house, and carefully instructed each of the persons
concerned in the part they were to perform in the ceremonies
which were to transfer the fate of Hector Munro to his brother
George.
Thefriends of Hector, who were in the secret, represented that
if George should die suddenly, suspicioa would fall upon them
all, and their lives would be in danger, and wished her to delay
his death " a space ;" and she took on hand to " warrant him unto
the 17th day of April next thereafter." They then took the sick
man from his bed, and carried him in a pair of blankets to the
grave, the assistants being forbidden to utter a word until the
witch and his foster-mother, named Christiana Neill Dayzill, had
first spoken with " their master, the devil." Hector was then
placed in the grave, and the green sod laid over him, and held
down upon him with staves, and the chief witch took her stand
beside him. The foster-mother, leading a young lad by the hand,
then ran the breadth of nine ridges, and on her return inquired
of the hag " which was her choice ;" to which she replied that
112 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
" Hector was her choice to live, and his brother George to die
forhim." This strange form of incantation was repeated thrice,
and then the patient was taken from the grave, and carried home
to his bed in the same silence which had distinguished the first
part of the ceremony. The effects of an exposure to the cold
of a January night in the north, on a sick man, must have been
very serious; but Hector recovered soon afterward, and in the
month of April, as foretold, George Munro was seized with a
mortal disease, under which he lingered till the month of June,
when he died. Hector Munro took the witch into great favor,
carried her to the house of his uncle at " Kildrummadyis," where
she was "entertained as if she had been his spouse,. and gave
her such pre-eminence in the country that there was none that
durst offend her, and gave her the keeping of his sheep, to color
the matter." After the death of George, the affair was whispered
abroad, and an order was issued for the arrest of the witch, but
she was concealed by Hector Munro, until information was
given by Lady Fowlis, that she was in the house at Fowlis.
When subjected to an examination, and no doubt to the torture,
she made a confession, and was publicly burnt. Her confession
was the ground of the charge against Hector Munro, who, like
his step-mother, was acquitted.
The trials of Lady Fowlis and Hector Munro, appear to have
caused much excitement, and other cases of witchcraft followed
with fearful rapidity in different parts of the country, to such a
degree that they movQd the learned superstition of the king, who
from this period began to take an extraordinary interest in prose-
cutions for crimes of this description. King James's example
was not lost upon his subjects, and not only did they show re-
doubled diligence in seeking out offenders, but probably cases
were made up to gratify his curiosity, until a fearful conspiracy
between the hags and the evil one was discovered, of which the
king was to have been the chief victim, and which will be rela-
ted at full in our next chapter. The interference of King James
not only marks an epoch in the history of sorcery in Scotland,
but it had also an influence in modifying the belief by the intro-
duction of the scientific demonology of France and Germany.
In the conspiracy to which I have just alluded, we shall see
many foreign notions mixed with the native superstitions.
For two or three subsequent years, the records of the high
court are unfortunately missing, but in 1596, we find several
prosecutions for the practice of witchcraft, of which pe^rsons of
high rank believed themselves, or were believed to be, the vie-
THE WITCHES OF HADDINGTON. 113
and from her she had her knowledge. She was accused after
this,with the other women as accomplices, of the superstitious
treatment of various sick persons, besides some other transac-
tions not more honest than her treatment of the baker of Had-
dington. Janet Stewart was on one occasion, called to a wo-
man who was " deadly sick ;" she took off the sick woman's shirt
and her " mutche" (cap), and carried them to a stream which ran
toward the south, and washed them in it, and made the patient
put them on dripping wet, and said thrice over her, " In the name
of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost," and then put a
red-hot iron in the water, and then burnt straw at each " newke"
of the bed. This was a primitive sort of " cold-water cure."
She healed several women of another disease, by passing them
thrice through a garland of green woodbine, which she afterward
cut in nine pieces, and cast in the fire. Woodbine appears to
have been a favorite remedy in a variety of cases. Bessie Aiken
cured most of her patients by passing them nine times through a
" girth" of woodbine, in the name of the three persons of the
Holy Trinity. For a woman laboring under a pain in the loins,
she took a decoction of red nettles and herb Alexander, and bathed
the part with it, and then boiled herb Alexander with fresh but-
ter, and rubbed her with it, and then passed her nine times
through the girth of woodbine, at three several times, a space of
twenty-four hours being allowed to elapse between each. Other
similar practices are recounted ; and the four women werre final-
ly condemned to be taken to the castle hill at Edinburgh, and
there to be strangled at a stake till they died, and their bodies to
be burnt to ashes a sentence which was duly executed on three
;
of them. But Bessie Aiken pleaded that she was with child, and
she was allowed to languish in prison until the 15th of August,
1598, when the king, moved with, for him, an unusual degree of
clemency, in consideration that she was " delyverit of ane in-
fant, and lies sustenit lang puneischment be famine and inipreis-
ment," commuted her original sentence for perpetual banishment.
We have thus traced the history of witchcraft in Scotland to
the close of the sixteenth century, down to which time it had
preserved its national character, altogether diff'ering from the su-
perstitions which prevailed on the continent in the same age. In
Scotland, witchcraft was an object of more universal and unhes-
itating belief than in almost any other country, and it obtained
greater authority from the circumstance that so many people of
rank at different periods had recourse to it as a means of gratify-
ing revenge or ambition. There were sorcerers among the mi-
KING JAMES AND THE WITCHES OF LOTHIAN. 115
CHAPTER X.
hardly left the port when they were assailed by a tempest, which
carried them so far from their course that they with difficulty
reached Upsal in Norway, where a continuance of tempestuous
weather threatened to detain them till the setting in of winter.
King James, impatient of delay, summoned up more courage than
he had ever shown before, and on the 22d of October, set off in
search of his wife, whom he found still at Upsal where they
were again married, and with whom he returned to Copenhagen,
and remained there during the winter. On the reappearance
of spring he left Denmark, and after a rough voyage, landed with
his queen at Leith, on the 1st of May, 1590.
The obstinate hostility of the weather toward James and his
new consort coinciding with political hatred among a portion of
his subjects, gave rise to strange reports, and at last a conspiracy
of an unearthly character was brought to light, by the agency of
which it was universally believed that the royal seafarer had
116 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
in order to discover the devil's mark. For it was one article of the
belief in witchcraft, that, after the compact between the witch and
the evil one had been completed, the latter sucked some part of
his victim's body, and left his mark, and until this mark was dis-
covered, his influence was unabated, and he hindered confession.
The mark was most commonly placed on a part covered with
hair, that it might be more easily concealed and hence one of
:
his bed, " musing and thinking how he might be revenged of the
said Thomas," when the devil suddenly made his appearance,
clad in white raiment, and said to him, " Will ye be my servant,
and adore me and all my servants, and ye shall never Avant 1"
The doctor assented to the terms, and, at the suggestion of
the evil one, he revenged himself on Trumbill by burning his
house. The second night the devil again appeared to him in
white raiment, and put his mark upon him with a rod. Subse-
quently, Fian was found in his chamber, as it were, in a trance,
during which he said that his spirit was carried " over many
mountains," and as it appeared all over the world. From this
time he was present at all the nightly conventions held in the
district of Lothian, and rose so high in Satan's favor, that the
fiend appointed him his " registrar and secretary." His first
visit to these conventions was at the church at North Berwick,
about fourteen miles along the coast from Preston-Pans, a favor-
ite meeting-place of the witches. He was transported thither
from his bed at Preston-Pans, " as if he had been skimming
across the earth ;" and he found a number of Satan's " servants,"
with a candle burning blue in the middle of them. Their master
stood in a pulpit " making a sermon of doubtful speeches," the
effect of which was that they were not to fear him, " though he
were grim" (he seems to have appeared in a different character
from that in which he first presented himself to Fian) ; telling
them that "he had many servants, who should never want, and
should ail nothing, so long as their hairs were on, and that they
should never let any tears fall from their eyes." It was a common
article of belief that witches could not shed tears. He further ex-
113 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
horted them that " they should spare not to do evil, and to eat,
drink, and be blithe ;" and he made them do him homage by kiss-
ing his posteriors. Fian appears to have been an ill-disposed
person, and well inclined to put in practice Satan's exhortations.
The power which he obtained by his connection with the tempt-
er, was always employed to work mischief, or for the indulgence
of his wicked passions. He confessed on his trial that he had
seduced a widow named Margaret Spens, under promise of mar-
riage, and then deserted her. He was popularly accused of
having attempted to force to his will a virtuous maiden, the sister
of one of his scholars, by charms which can not well be described
here, but which were thwarted by the ingenuity of her mother,
and made to throw disgrace on the designing sorcerer. While
residing at Tranent, Fian one night supped at the miller's, some
distance from the town, and as it was late before he left, was
conveyed home on a horse by one of the miller's men it being
;
the devil was after the death of her husband, when he appeared
to her in the likeness of a man, and commanded her to acknowl-
edge him as her master, and to renounce Christ. This she
agreed to, being poor, and the tempter promising her riches for
herself and her children. He generally appeared to her in the
likeness of a dog, of which she asked questions, and received
answers. On one occasion, when she was sent for to the old
EUPHAME MACKALZEANE. 119
lady Edmestoime, who lay sick, she went into the garden at
night and called the devil by the name of Elva, who came in
over the dike, in the likeness of a dog, and came so near to her
that she was frightened, upon v/hich she charged him, " on the
law he believed on," to come no nearer. She then asked him
if the lady would recover, and he told her that " her days were
gone." He then asked where the gentlewomen, the lady's
daughters, were. She told him they w^ere to meet her there, on
which he said that he would have one of them. Agnes said that
she would hinder him, on which he went away howling, and
concealed himself in the well, where he remained till after sup-
per. The gentlewomen came into the garden when supper was
over, whereupon the dog rushed out, terrified them all, and seized
one of the daughters, the lady Torsenye, and attempted to drag
her into the well to drown her, but Agues also seized hold of
her, and proved stronger than the devil, who thereupon disap-
peared with a terrible howl. On another occasion, Agnes, with
Geillis Duncan and other witches, wishing to be revenged on
David Seytoun (Geillis Duncan's master), met on the bridge at
Foulstruthir, and threw a cord into the river, and Agnes Samp-
soun cried, " Hail, holoa !" The end of the cord which was in
the water became immediately heavy, and when they drew it
out, the devil came upat the end of it, and asked if they had all
been good servants. He then gave them a charm, which was to
affect David Seytoun and his goods, but it was accidentally
averted, and fell upon another person. The lady of whom we
are now speaking seems to have had a little of the evil one in
her, for she sometimes quarrelled with the devil himself.
Euphame (Euphemia) Mackalzeane, one of the persons most
deeply implicated in these charges, was a lady of rank in soci-
ety, the only daughter and heiress of Thomas Mackalzeane lord
Cliftounhall, one of the senators of the College of Justice, a dis-
tinguished scholar, lawyer, and statesman. She appears to have
been led into associating with the base people concerned in this
conspiracy, by her devotion to the Romish religion and to the
party of the earl of Bothwell. She confessed that she had first
been made a witch by the means of an Irishwoman " with a
fallen nose ;" and that to make herself " more perfect and well-
skilled in the said art of witchcraft," she had caused another
witch, dwelling in St. Ninian's Row (in Edinburgh), to " inau-
gurate" her in the said craft, with " the girth of ane grit bikar,"
turnmg the same " oft round her head and neck, and oft-times
round her head." She was charged with having procured the
120 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
lande, and daunced this reill or short daunce, singing all with
one voice,
" ' Commer goe ye before, commer goe ye,
Gif ye wall not goe before, commer let me.'
At which time she confessed that this Geillis Duncane did goe
before them, playing this reill or daunce, upon a small trumpe,
called a Jewes trumpe, until they entered into the kirk of North
Barrick." On one occasion, Fian, Agnes Sampoun, an active
wizard named Robert Griersoun, and others, left Griersoun's
house, at Preston, in a boat, and went out to sea to a " tryst,"
with another witch, and entered a ship, and had "good wine
and ale" therein, after which, as was their usual custom, they
sank the ship and all that was in it, and returned home. On
another occasion, as Agnes Sampsoun confessed, they sailed out
from North Berwick in a boat like a chimney, the devil passing
before them like a rick of hay, and entered a ship called the
" Grace of God,"Avhere they had abundance of wine and " other
good cheer," and when they came away the fiend raised " an
evil wind," he being under the ship, and caused the ship to
perish and Agnes said that she gave on this occasion twenty
;
MEETING OF WITCHES. 121
thrice through the links of the crook, and passed it thrice under
the chimney." They subsequently tied to the four feet of the
cat four joints of dead men and it was then carried to Leith,
;
Dr. Fian, who saw a vapor and smoke rise from the spot where
it touched the water.
The king and his consort, as we have seen, escaped all the
perils of the sea, and landed safely in Scotland. Satan con-
fessed that James was " un homme de Dieu," and that he had
little power over him but after his return, new plans were
;
was stripped, the hair shaved from her body, and " the devil's
mark" found in a part where it was a cruel insult to her woman-
hood to search. She confessed anything rather than submit to
further indignities.
The we are told, " took great delight" in these exam-
king,
inations and the confessions put him " in a wonderful admira-
;
tion." His vanity was flattered, at the same time that his curi-
osity was excited and gratified. He made Geilles Duncan play
before him on her trump (or Jew's harp) the same tune to which
the witches had danced in their meetings. The trials continued
to occupy him throughout the winter of 1590, and the end was
more tragical even than the beginning, for the Scottish Solomon
was inexorable in his judgments. Dr. Fian.was condemned on
the 26th of December, 1590, and " byrnt" at the beginning of
January. On the 27th of January, 1591, Agnes Sampsoun was
sentenced to be taken to the castle-hill of Edinburgh, and there
be bound to a stake and " wirreit" [worried] till she was dead,
and thereafter her body burnt to ashes all which was duly ex-
;
KING JAMES ON WITCHCRAFT. 1S5
CHAPTER XI.
pig would have had a better chance. In the earlier part of the
sixteenth century, as we learn from Wierus, a contemporary
writer on these subjects, there was a man at Magdeburg who
undertook to ride up in the air, and, under this pretext, collected
from those who were eager to witness his departure a considera-
able sum of money. The people who had paid their money met
on the day appointed they saw the man bring forth a horse and
;
usual method was to force the spirit into a crystal, or stone, and
to hold him confined there until he had answered the pm-poses
for which he was called. Dee's conjuring stone was preserved
in the Strawberry Hill collection, and is described as being ap-
parently a polished piece of kennel coal. The works on magic
give the several invocations and forms for calling each particu-
lar spirit; and there are even incantations of a more stringent
nature to be used for the purpose of constraining or punishing
such spirits as might show obstinacy toward those who called
upon them. A volume of this description among the manu-
scripts in the British Museum (MS. Sloane, No. 3850, fol. 149),
after giving a charm, and directions for using it, goes on to say,
" The virtue of this, first, is, that if any spirit were in any glass,
and any of these figures laid upon the said glass, that then the
spirit should not depart till the figure were removed and when;
thou wilt bind or conjure any spirit, then thou must bind the seal
of Solomon about thy right arm, the pentagon and mortagon
about thy head, and the girdle about thy breast then hold a
:
little myrrh and frankincense under thy tongue, and call what
spirit thou wilt, and he will presently, without delay, come and
obey thee in what he may." It was necessary that persons
using these charms should be well acquainted with the science
and its applications for, although, when properly performed,
;
they made the magician absolute master of the spirit, the latter
was an unwilling servant, and if the slightest error were made
in the incantation, he not unfrequently took his revenge by rush-
ing on the unskilful scholar, and carrying him away. In 1530, as
Wierus tells us, a priest of Nuremburg had recourse to such in-
showed him in a glass where treasure
cantations, and the devil
lay buried. The went to the spot, and began digging,
priest
but, when he had just come in sight of the che^t of treasure and
of a black dog which guarded it, the earth fell in upon him and
buried him, and nobody could find the place afterward.
As we approach the age of the Reformation, we find that the
study of magic and alchemy had become extremely common
among the Romish clergy. This was especially the case in
England, where we hear of frequent instances of priests and
monks who ventured to dabble in the forbidden sciences. Un-
der the first monarchs of the Tudor dynasty, the extraordinary
WILLIAM NEVILLE. 129
the old subject, tellinghim that he had with him another con-
jurer, named Wade, who could show him more than he should;
and, among other things, had showed him that " he should be a
great lord." This was an effective attempt to move Wood's
jealousy and it appears that Neville now prevailed upon him
;
cause he was bound unto the lord-cardinal.' And that also they
did entreat the said parson of Lesingham, and the said Sir John
of Leiston, that they might depart as at that time ; and whenso-
ever it would please them to call them up again, they would glad-
ly do them any service they could."
When Stapleton had made this important acquisition, he re-
paired again to Norwich, where he had not long been, when he
was found by a messenger from a personage whom he calls the
lord Leonard Marquees, who lived at " Calkett Hall," and who
wanted a person expert in the art of digging. He met Lord
Leonard at Walsingham, who promised him that if he would
take pains in exercising the said art, he would sue out a dispen-
sation for him to be a secular priest, and so make him his chap-
lain. The lord Leonard proceeded rather shrewdly to make trial
of the searcher's talents ; for he directed one of his servants to
hide a sum of money in the garden, and Stapleton " shewed" for
it, and one Jackson " scryed," but he was unable to find the
money. Yet, without being daunted at this slip, Stapleton went
directly with two other priests. Sir John Shepe and Sir Robert
Porter, to a place beside Creke Abbey, where treasure was sup-
posed to be, and " Sir John Shepe called the spirit of the treas-
ure, and I showed to him, but all came to no purpose.''''
Stapleton now went to hide his disappointment in London, and
remained there some weeks, till the lord Leonard, who had sued
out his dispensation as he promised, sent for him to pass the winter
with him in Leicestershire, and toward spring he returned to Nor-
folk. And there he was informed that there was " much money"
hidden in the neighborhood of Calkett Hall, and especially in the
Bell Hill (probably an ancient tumulus or barrow), and after
WILLIAM STAPLETON. 133
finding that he would not confess " to their minds," asked him
what money he vi^ould give them " to have no further trouble."
On his refusing to give them anything, they threatened to carry
him to Norwich Castle. The noise in the yard had now brought
out several men of substance, who were drinking in the alehouse,
and who not onl}^ attempted to bring the accusers to reason, but
oflered to give security, to the amount of a hundred pounds, for
Goodred's appearance to answer apy charges brought against
him. But this was not what Smith and his companions wanted,
and they refused, and led away Goodred as far as Little Melton,
accompanied by those who had joined them at the alehouse, and
136 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
there they met a Mi-. Calle, who also ofTered to be surety for
Goodred, but in vain. They thus proceeded to carry their pris-
oner to Norwich, but at la.st, after much wrangling, they agreed
to take surety of the persons who had followed them from Great
Melton for Goodred's appearance at Norwich the next day. Ac-
cordingly, on St. George's day, Goodred, with his sureties, came
to the house of Saunders already mentioned, in the market-place,
and there Smith and Amylyon asked him again how much money
he would give them to have no further trouble, " or elles they
would send him to the castle." On his again refusing to give
any money, they dragged him through the market-place toward
the castle, but at Cutlers' Row his courage failed him, and " for
fear of imprisonment," he engaged to give Smith twenty shil-
lings, in part of which he paid down to him, on a stall in Cut-
lers'Row, six shillings and eightpence, and gave sureties for the
remainder, which was duly paid on the following Saturday, and
Smith and Amylyon had the impudence to give him a written
acquittance.
Such was the oppressive manner in which, in former days,
men could act under cover of the livery or license of a lord.
The matter was brought before the court of Norwich, as stated
above, and Amylyon, who appears to have had a quarrel with
his accomplice Smith, came forward as a witness against him.
But still there appears to have- been no great expectation of se-
curing justice in this court and the persons injured had re-
;
true science had made wide and solid progress in the land. In
1574, the celebrated Dr. Dee petitioned Lord Burghley to obtain
for him from Queen Elizabeth a license of monopoly of treasure-
digging in England. This superstition appears to have lingered
longest in Wales and on the borders Among the Landsdowne
manuscripts there is a letter from John Wogan, sheriff of Pem-
brokeshire, to Lord Burghley, informing him that it was reported
that certain persons had " found at an old pair of walles at Spit-
tell, in the said county, a great quantity of treasure, gold and sil-
think you have the heart to venture, I will give you all the sat-
isfaction you can desire.' Thus we agreed to undertake this
matter.
" The priest one evening prepared to satisfy me, and desired
me to look out for a companion or two. I invited one Vincenzo
Roraoli, who was my intimate acquaintance ; he brought with
him a native of Pistoia, who cultivated the black art himself.
We repaired to the Colosseum, and the priest, according to the
custom of necromancers, began to draw circles upon the ground
with the most impressive ceremonies imaginable he likewise
;
all thosedemons were under us, and what he saw was smoke
and shadow so bid him hold up his head and take courage.
;
No sooner did he look up, but he cried out, The whole amphi-
'
ing his face with his hands, he again exclaimed that destruction
was inevitable, and he desired to see no more. The necroman-
cer entreated me to have a good heart, and take care to burn
proper perfumes upon which I turned to Romoli, and bid him
;
burn all the most precious perfumes he had. At the same time
I cast my eye upon Agnolino Gaddi, who was terrified to such a
degree, that he could scarce distinguish objects, and seemed to be
half dead. Seeing him in this condition, I said, 'Agnolino, upon
these occasions a man should not yield to fear, but should stir
"about and give his assistance so come directly and put on some
;
rious treasures with which the earth abounds, which would raise
us to opulence and power but that those love affairs were mere
;
CHAPTER XII.
have imbibed his taste for the occult sciences, whioii his imagi-
native, mind retained duringhis life, while a student at Louvaine ;
yet it is singular that one of his earliest writings was a defence
of Roger Bacon against the imputation of having leagued with
demons to obtain his extraordinary knowledge. Under the reign
of Mary, Dee was in close correspondence with the princess
Elizabeth, who from her childhood had been brought up in the
love of learning and learned men and for this intimacy, the
;
only expressed his belief that the spirits who came into the glass
were demons sent to hurry them to their destruction, but he com-
plained that he was kept in Dee's house as in a prison, that " it
were better for him to be near Cotsall Plain, where he might
walk abroad without danger." The feelings of the doctor seem
to have been much hurt at the doubts thus cast on the respecta-
bility of his spiritual visiters.
During this and the following year, Dee's conferences with
the spirits were very frequent. It appears that he consulted
them sometimes for himself, and sometimes for others, and they
often came when not called for. In the year 1583, Albert Las-
ki, or Alaski, waiwode or prince of Siradia, in Poland, paid a
visit to the coux't of Queen Elizabeth, and became a frequent vis-
iter at Dee's house at Mortlake, where he was initiated into these
spiritual mysteries. Kelly seems to have harbored strange and
ambitious projects to be carried into effect through Laski, or some
of the German princes, and he began to work upon his imagination
THE SPIRITUAL VISITANT, 147
maiden.'
" Mad. I over my gentlewomen first my master
will read ;
" Mad. M}^ [mother] saith his name is Edward ; look you, he
hath a crown upon his head ; my mother saith that this man was
duke of York."
Such is the style in which these extraordinary revelations
commence. In the earlier books their objects were generally
matters of much less importance but Kelly seems to have, ;
" Gal. The one thou hast repeated, and the other he seeketh
as right.
" D. God grant him sufficient direction to do all things so as
may please the highest of his calling.
" Gal. He shall want no direction in anything he desireth.
" D. As concerning the troubles of August next, and the dan-
gers then, what is the best for him to do ? to be going home be-
fore, or to tarry here ?
" Gal. Whom God hath armed, no man can prevail against."
Kelly nowagain began to pretend scruples as to the propriety
of their dealing with the spirits, whom he believed were devils ;
Then Edward Kelly again upon the same Bible did swear unto
me constant friendship, and never to forsake me and moreover
;
said, that unlesse this had. so fain out, he would have gone be-
'
yond the seas, taking ship at Newcastle within eight days next.'
And so we plight our faith each tp other, taking each other by
the hand upon these points of brotherly and friendly fidelity
during life, which covenant I beseech God to turn to his honor,
glory, and service, and the comfort of our brethren (his chil-
dren) here in earth."
Kelly seems at this time to have been unhappy in his domestic
affairs, and to have been in fear of arrest, and he still talked of
leaving Dee's service. In a fit of anger, at the beginning of
July, he offered to release Dee of his engagement of fifty pounds
a year,- declared that he hated his own wiie, and wished to be
away. All this, except the want of love for his wife, was mere
dissimulation he did not go, but in the next conference with
;
the spiritual world, he declared that he had been rebuked for his
discontent.
At length, all preparations having been made for the journey.
Dee and Kelly, with their two wives and families, left Mortlake
to accompany Albert Lasky into Poland, where they hoped to
share in the great fortunes which had been promised him. They
consulted their spirits, even when at sea, and apparently with
the utmost satisfaction. They landed at the Brill on the 30th of
the same month, and proceeded through Holland and Friesland
to Embden and Bremen, and so to Lubeck, where they remained
during the latter part of November and the beginning of Decem-
ber. On Christmas-day they reached Stettin in Pomerania,
where they remained till the middle of January. During their
travels, they were favored with many wonderful revelations of
events which were soon to occur, most of them pointing to the
extraordinary fortunes which awaited the Polish prince.
At Stettin, on the 13th of January, the angel Uriel appeared
to them, and assured them of the approaching advent of anti-
christ. Early in February, they reached Lasco, the prince's
lordship, and here they began to be affected w.ith doubts if Al-
bert Lasky were indeed the destined regenerator. They seem
to have been deceived as to his riches and power, and it was re-
vealed to them that on account of his faults he had been in part
rejected, but that he would eventually obtain the kingdom of
Moldavia. Dee was now directed by the spirits to leave Lasco,
and take up hi^ residence at Cracow. Thither accordingly they
all repaired toward the middle of the March of 1584, and they
QUARRELS OF DEE AND KELLY. 151
remained there till the end of July. During this period the
doubts relating to Lasky produced an almost daily appeal to the
spirits. Sometimes the Polish prince seemed restored to favor,
at other times he was in discredit, until at length, after Dee and
his party had been reduced to great distress for want of money,
Lasky's final rejection was announced, and Dee was sent with
a divine message to the emperor Rodolph. Dee and Kelly were
at the same time directed by their spirits to remove from Cra-
cow to Prague.
During their residence at Cracow, there were several violent
disputes between Dee and Kelly, resulting from the pretended
doubts of the latter as to the character of the spirits with whom
they conversed. The object of these doubts was evidently to
drag Dee more entirely into Kelly's power, by practising upon
his credulity. On the 23d of May, Dee has noted that " there
happened a great storm or temptation to Edward Kelly of doubt-
ing and misliking our instructors and their doings, and of con-
temning and condemning anything that I knew or could do. I
bare all things patiently for God his sake." When Kelly pro-
ceeded to consult the spirits, he was rebuked for his doubts.
Next day, these doubts returned, and he refused to continue his
performances. But on the 28th of May, he performed the office
of skryer again, and was further rebuked for his disbelief. At
the beginning of June, Kelly is represented as being entirely
converted from his evil thoughts yet about a fortnight afterward
;
tween Dee and Kelly, and the doctor appears to have been afraid
of losing his assistant.
In the May of 1586, the bishop of Placenza, who was residing
in Austria as apostolical nuncio, procured from the emperor an
order forbidding Dee remain any longer in his dominions upon
to ;
came, and they were all in the body of the circle, when lo; upon,
a sudden, after some time of invocation, Evans was taken from
out the room, and carried into the field near Battersea Causeway,
close to the Thames. Next morning, a countryman going by to
his labor, and espying a man in black clothes, came unto him
and awaked him, and asked him how he came there ? Evans by
this understood his condition, inquired where he was, how far
from London, and in what parish he was which, when he un-
;
share of it. Davy Ramsey finds out one John Scott, who pre-
tended the use of the Mosaical rods, to assist him herein I was ;
again, and each man returned unto his lodging late, about twelve
o'clock at night. I could never since be induced to join with
any in such like actions." Lilly adds in a note, " Davy Ramsey
brought a half quartern sack to put the treasure in."
Another of Lilly's magicians was William Hodges, who was
also an intimate friend of John Scott. " Scott having some oc-
casions into Staffordshire, addressed himself for a month or six
weeks to Hodges, assisted him to dress his patients, let blood,
&c. Being to return to J^ondon, he desired Hodges to show
him the person and feature of the woman he should marry.
Hodges carries him into a field not far from his house, pulls out
his crystal, bids Scott set his foot to his, and, after a while,
wishes him inspect the crystal, and observe what he saw
to
there. I see,' saith Scott, a ruddy-complexioned wench in a
—
' '
said Hodges. 'You are mistaken, sir,' said Scott; 'I am, so
soon as I come to Ijondon, to marry a tall gentlewoman in the
Old Bailey.' —
You must marry the red waistcoat,' said Hodges.
'
parts to be the same Hodges Itad described after "whicli lie be-
;
Hodges advice for recovery of him, did again obtain him. Some
years after, in a frolic, he thought to abuse him, acquainting a
neighbor therewith, viz., that he had formerly lost a horse, went
to Hodges, recovered him again, but saith it was by chance I ;
'
might have had him without going unto him come, let's go, I :
will now put a trick upon him I will have some boy or other
;
end.' With that Hodges swore (as he was too much given unto
that vice), Your horse is gone, and you will never have him
'
the boy fast asleep upon the ground, the horse gone, the boy's
arm in the bridle. He returns again to Hodges, desiring his
aid, being sorry for his former abuse. Old Will swore like a
devil. This business ended not* so for the malicious man
;
brought Hodges into the star-chamber, bound him over to the as-
sizes, put Hodges to great expenses but, by means of the Lord
:
rare notions in them. This Sarah lived a long time, even until
14
158 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
her death, with one Mrs. Stockman in the Isle of Purbeck, and
died about sixteen years since. Her mistress one time being
desirous to accompany her mother, the Lady Beconsfield, unto
London, who lived twelve miles from her habitation, caused
Sarah to inspect her crystal, to see if she, viz., her mother, was
gone, yea or not: the angels appeared, and shewed her mother
opening a trunk, and taking out a red waistcoat, whereby she
perceived she was not gone. Next da,y she went to her mother's,
and there, as she entered the chamber, she was opening a trunk,
and had a red waistcoat in her hand. Sarah told me oft, the an-
gels would for some years follow her, and appear in every room
in the house, until she was weary of them. This Sarah Skel-
horn her call unto the crystal began, OA ye good angels, only and
'
you !' quoth the friend. My heart fails I am not able to en-
' ;
dure longer.' Nor was he his black curling hair rose up, and
;
who held the government had a solemn consult upon the sup-
pressing it, as looking upon it as published by the church of Eng-
land men in reproach of them who then pretended so much to
inspiration and Goodwyn, Owen, and Nye, &c., were great
:
CHAPTER XIII.
time lord of the manor, —and with the other gentry of the neigh-
borhood. The family of Robert Throgmorton consisted of him-
self five daughters, of whom the eldest, Joan, was
and his wife,
fifteen years of age, the. others being named severally Jane,
Elizabeth, Mary, and Grace, and a rather numerous family of
servants.
It was about the 10th of November, 1589, that Jane Throg-
morton, then a child under ten years of age, was suddenly at-
tacked with strange convulsive fits, with which she was seized
several times in the day, and which continued daily and with
very little intermission. Among the villagers was a laboring
family of the name of Samwell, or Samuel (as it is spelled in
the printed record of those transactions), consisting of a man and
his wife, and their grown-up daughter Agnes, whose cottage
stood next to that of Robert Throgmorton, and v/ho were in the
habit of visiting the house to seek employment or the charitable
hospitality which the poor usually found in the kitchens or halls
of their betters. One day, soon after the illness of Jane Throg-
morton, Mother Samwell, as the old woman was popularly called,
came into the house and seated herself according to custom in
the chimney corner, by the side of a woman who was holding in
her arms the child, which was just recovering from one of its
fits, and it no sooner saw her than it began to cry out, pointing to
Mother Samuel, " Did you ever see one more like a witch than she
is ? Take off her black thrumbed cap, for I can not abide to look
at her ?" Little attention was paid to these expressions at the
time, except that the mother of the child rebuked it for its cross-
ness and a day or two after, as they found no abatement of the
;
—
there before us in a black thrumbed cap !"- this was her usual
head-dress, though it appears that she did not wear it on the pres-
ent occasion — " It is she that hath bewitched us, and she will
kill us if you don't take her away!" The parents now for the
first time began to suspect that their children were bewitched, a
suspicion which it appears had already been harbored by the
doctors, though they had concealed it and it was increased when,
;
a month later, the youngest daughter, who was about nine years
TEE WITCHES OF WAEBOYS, 161
of age,was seized with the same fits, and cried also upon Mother
Samwell. About the same time, the eldest daughter, Joan Throg-
morton, was attacked in the same manner, and like the others,
cried afterMother Samwell.
Joan Throgmorton's fits v^^ere much more violent than those of
the younger children, and while suffering from them her mind
seemed to wander, she said strange things, and appeared to hold
converse with some person or thing v/hich was not visible.
Among other things, she declared that the spirit told her that
twelve persons would be bewitched in the house, all through the
agency of Mother Samwell, and she named the other seven, who
were all Mrs.. Throgmorton's servants. Accordingly, the ser-
vants were soon after attacked in the same manner, and called
likewise on Mother Samwell as their persecutor, saying " Take
:
her away,_ mistress for God's sake, take her away, and burn
!
her for she will kill us all if you let her alone !" The servants
!
soon left their places, and no sooner had they done this than they
were perfectly well, and remained so, while those who came in-
to their places were immediately exposed to the same attacks.
It was observable of them all, that when they were out of their
fits, they were totally unconscious of everything they had said.
14*
162 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
her father his dinner.' Whilst these words were speaking, Mr.
Whittle, Mrs. Audley, and the rest, went into the house, and
three of the children stood in the hall by the fire, perfectly well
but no sooner had Mother Samwell entered the hall, but these
three children fell down at one moment on the ground, strangely
tormented, so that if they had been let alone, they would have
leaped and sprung about like a fish newly taken out of the water,
their bellies lifting up, and, their head and heels still remaining
on the ground." When Mother Samwell was brought to the chil-
dren, they were violent in their attempts to scratch her, which
was regarded as a sure sign of her being a witch.
The next day, Mr. Pickering took Elizabeth Thrograorton
home with him to Titchmarch Grove, where she remained till
the eighth of September following, always troubled with her dis-
order, which attacked her in a variety of ways. Sometimes the
reading of anything spiritual, or even saying grace at table, threw
her into a fit immediately; sometimes she would be in a state of
insensibility except to one thing on which she was occupied
sometimes a particidar game alone kept her tranquil at other
;
times she was for a long period in violent hysterics, and then she
woidd cry out against Mother Samwell. On the 2d of March,
after her arrival at Titchmarch Grove, " all her fits were merry,
full of exceeding laughter, and so hearty and excessive, that if
THE WITCHES OF WARBOYS. 163
she had been awake, she would have been ashamed of being so
full of trifling toys, and some merry jests of her own making,
which would occasion herself, as well as the standers-by, to laugh
at them. In this fit she chose one of her uncles to go to cards
with her and desiring to see the end of it, they played together.
;
Soon after, there was a book brought and laid before her, upon
which she threw herself backward but that being taken away,
;
she presently recovered and played again which was often tried,
;
and found true. As she thus played at cards, her eyes were
almost shut, so that she saw the cards, and nothing else knew
;
her uncle, and nobody else she heard and answered him, and
;
her either counters or cards, but another might steal them out of
her hands without her seeing or feeling of them. Sometimes
she would chide another whom she did see and hear sometimes
;
a little child, but never above one in a fit. The fifth of March
she fell into a fit in the morning, and longed to go home to her
father's. The sixth, one of her father's men came over to Titch-
march Grove, whom she had often called in her fit to carry her
to Warboys to her father's, saying, if she were but half way, she
knew that she should be well. To try this, they carried -her
toward Warboys on horseback and being scarce gone a bow-
;
shot, by a pond side, she awaked, wondering where she was, not
knowing anything, but no sooner the horse's head was turned
back, but she fell into her fit again and for three days after, and
;
turned. The eighth day of March she had a new antic trick ;
for she would go well enough three steps, but the third she down-
right halted, giving a beck with her head as low as her knees ;
and as she was sitting by the fire, she would suddenly start up,
up, saying she would go to Warboys but she was stopped at the
;
door, when going out, with a nod she hit her forehead against
the latch, which raised a lump as big as a v/alnut ; and being
carried to the pond, and there awaking, she asked how she came
to be hurt. There she continued all day Avell, playing with other
children at bowls, or some other sport, for the foolisher sport
she made use of, the less she was tormented with the spirit; but
as soon as any motion was made of coming into the house, the
fit presently took her, so that for twelve days she was never out
of her fit within doors, eating and drinking in it, but neither see-
ing, hearing, nor understanding, and without memory of speak-
ing."
164 SOECERY AND MAGIC.
Mr. Throgmorton nor his wife accused her, but the children
themselves in their fits, " or rather the spirit within them." A
divine named Dr. Hall was present, and he and the lady wished
to examine the accused more closely, but she refused. " When
the lady found that neither she nor anybody else could prevail,
and that she wanted to be gone, she suddenly pulled off' her ker-
cher, and with a pair of scissors cut off a lock of her hair, and
gave it privatel}^ to Mrs. Throgmorton with her hair-lace, desi-
ring her to burn them." This was an approved antidote against
witchcraft. " Mother Samwell, finding herself so served, spoke
thus to the lady, Madam, why do you use me thus ? I never did
'
in her sleep by a cat which Mother Samv/ell had sent her, which
off"ered topluck off the skin and flesh of her bones and arms.
The struggle betwixt the cat and the lady was so great in her
bed that night, and she made so terrible a noise, that she waked
her bed-fellow, Mrs. Cromwell [both their husbands were from
home], who, perceiving the lady thus disquieted, awaked her,
whom the lady thanked for so doing, and told her how much she
had been troubled with Mother Samwell and her cat, with many
other circumstances, which made her so uneasy, that she could
not rest all that night for fear of the same." Next day Lady
Cromwell was seized with an illness from which she never re-
covered.
Various other attempts were made to persuade Mother Sam-
well to acknowledge her fault and relieve the children from their
sufferings, but for months no attempt was made to press the mat-
ter against her in a judicial manner, although the fits continued
unabated. In 1592, the spirits began to show themselves to the
children in their fits, and sometimes when they were not in theii
THE WITCHES OF WARBOYS. 165
attacked with fits, andshe said the house was haunted with evil
spirits, and she would leave it the spirits themselves became
;
the old woman to confess and amend what she had done. Tor-
mented with these importunities, she one day let herself be per-
suaded to pronounce an exorcism against the spirits, and the
children were immediately relieved from their influence. " Mr.
Throgmorton's face was then toward the children, and his back
to the old woman, and seeing them start up at once, he said,
'Thanks be to God!' In the meantime the old woman, fell
down on her knees behind him, and said, Good master, forgive '
me.' He, turning about, and seeing her down, said, Why, '
Mother Samwell, what is the matter?' 'O, sir,' said she, I — '
have been the cause of all this trouble to your children.' Have '
ever give you to use me and my children thus V None at all,' '
said she. Then,' says he, you have done me the more wrong.'
'
Good
'
and told him all the circumstances; and all of them endeavored
to make her easy, but nevertheless she wept all that nijjjht. The
next day, being Christmas even, and the sabbath, Dr. Dorrington
chose his text of repentance out of the Psalms, and communi-
cating her confession to the assembly, directed his discourse
chiefly to that purpose, to comfort a penitent heart, that it might
affect her. All the sermon-time Mother Samvvell w^ept and la-
mented, and was frequently so loud in her passions, that she
drew the eyes of the congregation upon her."
The next day Mother Samwell contradicted all she had said,
declaring that she was drawn into the confession by hor surprise
at finding that her exorcism had relieved the children, and that
she hardly knew what she was saying. It was believed that
this denial was the result of a compact with her husband and
daughter, and all other means proving ineffectual to bring her
back to her confession, they carried her at the end of December
(1592) before the bishop of Lincoln. The old woman was now
thoroughly frightened, and she made a new confession, that she
was really a witch, that she had several spirits whose names she
repeated, one of which appeared in the shape of a dun chicken,
and often sucked her chin, and that they were given to her by
an "upright man," of whose name and dwelling-place she was
equally ignorant. On this confession, both mother and daughter
were committed to Huntingdon jail, but the latter was bailed in
accordance with Mr. Throgmorton's wish to take her to his
house, in order to see if her presence would have the same effect
on his children as that of her mother.
Dr. Dorrington and a Cambridge " scholar" were also in the
house, and the evidence of the former as to what happened in
the house when Agnes Samwell was brought there was of great
weight against her on her trial. On the 10th of February, 1593,
according to Dr. Dorrington's statement, " In the afternoon, she
(Jane Throgmorton) lay groaning in her fit by the fireside, and
suddenly was taken with a bleeding at the nose, which surprised
her very much, fearing ill news after it. When she had bled
much in her handkerchief, she said it was a good deed to throw
it in the fire and burn the witch. After she had talked thus, it
appeared that the spirit came to her she smiling and looking
;
she, dost thou say I shall be worse handled than ever I was ?
'
Ha what dost thou say 1 that I- shall now have my fits, when I
!
shall both hear and see and know everybody ? that's a new trick
indeed. I think never any of my sisters were so used, but I
care not for you do your worst, and when you have done, you
;
will make an end.' After this she was silent awhile, but listen-
ing to something that was said, presently called for Agnes Sam-
well, asking where she was, and saying that she had too much
liberty, and that she must be more strictly looked to for late-
;
'
who was just come to her, it will be no better with us till you
'
and your mother are both hanged.' The maid confessed she
was in the kitchen-chamber and alone, but denied that she talked
with spirits, or knew any such. Mrs. Jane bid her not deny it,
for the spirits would not lie. Soon after she came out of this
fit, and complained of great pain in her legs, and being asked
where she had been, and what she had said, she answered, that
she had been asleep, and said nothing she knew of, and won-
dered how her handkerchief came to be so bloody, saying, some-
body else had bloodied it, and not she, for she was not used to
bleed."
The other children were much affected this day and the next,
and all seemed to conspire against Agnes Samwell but it was ;
fit some time, she fell into her senseless fit, and being silent
awhile, and her mouth shut, she fetched a great groan, and said,
' Whence came you, Mr. Smack, and what news do you bring V
The spirit answered, that he came from fighting. Said she,
'
With whom V The spirit answered, with Pluck.'
'
Where — '
did you fight, I pray you V said she. The spirit answered, in
old dame's back-house, which stood in Mother Samwell's yard
'and they fought with great cowlstaves last night.' —
And who '
Pluck's head. Says she, I wish he had broke your neck also.'
'
Saith the spirit, Is that all the thanks I shall have fur my la-
—
'
I wish you were all hanged up against one another, for you are
all naught but God will defend me from you ;' so he departed
;
and bid her farewell. Being asked when he would come again,
he said, On Wednesday night.' He was no sooner gone, but
'
presently came Pluck to her, to whom she said, From whence '
come you. Pluck, with your head hanging down so ?' He an-
swered just as Smack had told her. Then said the spirit to her,
'
When saw you Smack V She answered, that she knew no
such fellow. Yes,' says he, but you do, but you will not be
—
' '
known of him.' It seems,' says she, that you have met with
'
'
wantonness, as she used to say, she could not deny but it must
proceed from some supernatural power. When the fit was over,
she was well, except the pain in her legs. After supper, as
soon as her parents were risen, she fell into the same fit again,
as before, and then became senseless, and in a little time open-
ing her mouth, she said, 'Will this hold for ever? I hope it
will be better one day. From whence came you now. Catch V
said she, limping. I hope you have met with your match.'
'
Catch answered that Smack and he had been fighting, and that
Smack had broken his leg. Said she, That Smack is a shrewd '
your leg I hope,' said she, he will break both your necks be-
;
'
forth your other leg, and let me see if I can break that,' having a
stick in her hand. The spirit told her that she could not hit
him. '
Can I not hit you V said she ;
'
let me try.' Then the
spirit put out his leg, up the stick easily, and sud-
and she lifted
denly struck the ground. You have not hurt me,' said the '
I could, and then I would make some of you come short home.'
So she seemed divers times to strike at the spirit, but he leaped
DIALOGUES WITH THE SPIRITS. 169
in a sling, Mr. Blew ? Who hath met with you, I pray V The
spirit said, You kno\v well enough.' She answered, Do I
—
• '
know well enough ? how should I know V Why,' said the '
will be even with him,' said Blew, one day.' Why,' '
— '
you all, for he has broken Pluck's head, Catch's leg, and your
arm now you have something to do, you may go and heal your
arm.'
;
—
Yes,' saith the spirit,
' when my arm is well, we will
'
beat Smack.' So they parted, and she came out of her fit, and
complained of most parts of her body so that she seemed easi- ;
er while the spirit was talking with her, than when she came
out of her fit. The next day, which was Wednesday, she was
very ill, and \vhen night came, she first fell into her sensible
fit, and then into her senseless one, and after fetching a great
sigh, she said, Whence came you, Mr. Smack?'
'
He said he
w^as come according to his promise on Sunday night. Said she,
'
It is very likely you w-ill keep your promise, but I had rather
you would keep away till you are sent for but what news have ;
you brought V Said he, I told you I had been fighting last
Sunday night, but I have had many battles since.'
'
So it seems,' — '
said she, for here was both Pluck, Catch, and Blew, and all
—
'
came lame to me.' Yes,' said he, I have met with them all.'
—
'
'
But I wonder,' said she, 'you could beat them, for they are
'
very great, and you are but a little one.' Said he, I am good
—
'
enough for two of the best of them together.' But,' said she, I
can tell you news.' —
What's that V said he.
' They will all of
'
'
'
them fall upon you at once, and beat you.' He said he cared
not for that, he would beat two of the best of them. And who '
shall beat the other two V said she, for there is one who hath '
been often spoke of. called Hardname, his name standing upon
eight letters, and every letter standeth for a word, but what his
15
170 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
ended, she fell upon the maid. Nan Samw^ell, and took her head
under her arms, and first scratched the right side of her cheeks ;
and when she had done that, Now,' said she, I must sci-atch
' '
the left side for my Aunt Pickering,' and scratched that also till
blood came on both sides ver}' plentifully. The maid stood still,
and never moved to go away from her, yet cried pitifully, desi-
ring the Lord to have mercj' on her. When she had done scratch-
ing, Mrs. Joan sat herself upon a stool, and seemed to be out of
breath, taking her breath very short, yet the maid never struggled
with her, and was able to hold never a joint of her, but trembled
like a leaf, and called for a pair of scissors to pare her nails but
;
when she had them, she was not able to hold them in her hands,
but desired some one to do it for her, which Dr. Dorrington's
wife did. Mrs. Joan saved her nails as they were pared, and
when they had done threw them into the fire, and called for some
water to wash her hands, and then threw the water into the fire.
Then she fell upon her knees, and desired the maid to kneel by
her, and prayed with her, saying the Lord's prayer and the
creed but Mrs. Joan seemed as if she did not hear the maid,
;
for she would say amiss sometimes, and then the company would
help her out but Mrs. Joan did not stay for her, so that she had
;
ended before the maid had half done hers. After this, Dr. Dor-
rington took a prayer-book and read what prayers he thought fit
and when he had done, Mrs. Joan began to exhort the maid, and
as she was speaking she fell a weeping extremely, so that she
could not well express her words, saying that she would not have
scratched her, but she was forced to it by the spirit. As she was
thus complaining, her sister Elizabeth was suddenly seized with
THE TRIAL OF THE WITCHES. 171
a fit, and turning hastily upon the maid, catched her by one of
her hands, and fain would have scratched her, saying, the spirit
said she must scratch her too ; but the co'mpany desired the maid
to keep her hand from her, so they strove a great while till the
child was out of breath then said the child, Will nobody help
;
'
me?' twice or thrice over. Then said Mrs. Joan, being still in
her fit, Shall I help you, Sister Elizabeth V
' —
Ay, for God's
'
sake, sister,' said she. So Mrs. Joan came and took one of the
maid's hands, and held it to her sister Elizabeth, and she scratched
it till blood came, at which she was very joyful. Then she pared
her nails, and washed her hands, and threw the paring and the
water both into the fire. After all this, before the company de-
parted, the maid helped Mrs. Joan out of her fit three several
times, one after the other, by three several charges and like-
;
wise brought Mrs. Elizabeth out of her fit by saying, as she hath
bewitched Mrs. Elizabeth Throgmorton since her mother con-
fessed."
The sessions at Huntingdon began on the fourth of April, and
then the three Samvvells were put upon their trial, and all the fore-
going evidence and much more was repeated. The indictments
against them, specified the ofiences against the children and ser-
vants of-the Throgmortons, and the " bewitching unto death" of
the lady Cromwell. The grand jury found a verdict immediate-
ly, and then they were put upon their trial in court, and after
much evidence had been gone through, " the judge, justices, and
jury, said the case was apparent, and their consciences were
well satisfied that the said witches were guilty, and deserved
death." Afterward their confessions were put in, and " when
these were read, it pleased God to raise up more witnesses against
those wicked persons, as Robert Poulton, vicar of Brampton,
who openly one of his parishioners, John Langley, at
said, that
that time being sick in his bed, told him, that one day, being at
Huntingdon, he did, in Mother Samwell's hearing, forbid Mr.
Knowles, of Brampton, to give her any meat, for she was an old
witch and upon that, as he went from Huntingdon to Brampton
;
devil had not power over his body at that time, yet soon after he
lost many good and sound cattle, to men's judgment worth twenty
marks, and that he himself, not long after, was very seriously
handled in his body and the same night of the day of assize the
;
died, to make a hole in the ground, and burn it. On Friday, the
fourth week following, he had a fair cow, worth four marks, died
likewise, and his servants made a hole accordingly, and threw
faggots and sticks on her, and burnt her, and after, all his cattle
did well. As to the last matter. Mother Samwell being examined
the night before her execution, she confessed the bewitching of
the said cattle. Then the jailer of Huntingdon gave his evi-
dence, that a man of his, finding Mother Samwell was unruly
whilst she was a prisoner, chained her to a bed-post, and not
long after he fell sick, and was handled much as the children
were, heaving up and down his body, shaking his arms, legs, and
head, having more strength in his fits than any two men had, -and
crying out of Mother Samwell, saying she bewitched him, and
continuing thus five or six days, died. And the jailer said, that
not long after one of his sons fell sick, and was much as his ser-
vant was, whereupon the jailer brought Mother Samwell to his
bedside, and held her till his son had scratched her, and upon
that he soon mended."
When judgment of death was pronounced against her, the old
woman, a miserable wretch of sixty years of age, scarcely know-
ing what she was doing or saying, pleaded in arrest of judgment
that she was with child, a plea which onl}' produced a laugh of
derision. She confessed to whatever was put in her mouth.
The husband and daughter asserted their innocence to the last.
They were all hanged, and the historian of this strange event
assures us that from that moment Robert Throgmorton's children
were permanently freed from all their sufierings. In memory
of the conviction and punishment of the witches of Warboys,
Sir Henry Cromwell, as lord of the manor, gave a certain sum
of money to the town to provide annually the sum of forty shil-
lings to be paid for a sermon against witchcraft, to be preached
by a member of Queen's college, Cambridge, in Warboys church,
on Lady day, every year. I have not ascertained if this sermon
is still continued.
THE POETKY OF WITCHCRAFT. 173
CHAPTER XIV.
" was brought into Poules (to St. PauVs), and there he stood up
on high on a scaffold ageyn Poulys cross on a Sunday, and there
he was arraied like as he schulde never the [thrive) in his gar-
nementys, and there was honged rounde aboute hym alle his in-
struraentis whiche were taken with hym, and so shewyd among
all the peple," and he was eventually hanged, drawn, and quar-
tered as a traitor; the duchess was committed to perpetual im-
prisonment. In Shakspere the sorcerers are made to raise a
spirit in a circle, who answers to their questions concerning the
fate of the king and his favorites. In the reign of Edward IV. a
political party spread abroad a report that the marriage of the
king with the lady Elizabeth Gray was the result of witchcraft
employed by the lady's mother, the duchess of Bedford. The
plot was at the moment successfully exposed, and one " Thomas
Wake, esquier," was proved " to have caused to be brought to
Warrewyk ... an image of lede made lyke a man of
arraes, contaynyng the lengthe of a mannes fynger, and broken
15*
174 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
in the myddes, and made fast with a wyre," asserting that it was
made by the duchess " to use with the said witchcraft and sor-
sery ;" yet the story appears to have been believed by many, and
at the commencement of the reign of Richard III. it was revived
as one of the grounds for condemning the marriage in question
and bastardizing the children. In this last reign the same crime
of sorcery formed part of the charges brought against the queen's
kinsmen, as well as against the frail and unfortunate Jane Shore,
and subsequently against Archbishop Morton and other adherents
of the duke of Richmond. The great dramatist has made Rich-
ard accuse Queen Elizabeth and Jane Shore of a plot against his
own person
" Look l)ow I sm bewitched behold mine ai'm
;
any direct compact with the fiend. The witches are the mere
victims of their own vindictive feeling, and find ready instruments
in certain imps, of a very equivocal character, to wreak their
malice on man or beast. These imps are represented as appear-
ing in the form of small animals
der the repulsive title of vermin
——
generally those which come un-
or cats, and they serve merely
in return for their food. They bear undignified names, like Tyf-
fin, Piggin, Titty, Jack, Tom, and the like. Mother Samwell,
the witch of Warboys, Confessed that she had nine spirits or
imps, given her by an old man, and that three of them (cousins
to each other) were named each of them Smack : the names of
the others being Pluck, Blue, Catch, White, Calicut, and Hard-
name. One of the women arraigned at Chelmsford, in 1579,
was accused by her own son (a child of eight years of age, who
was examined in court as a witness against his mother), of keep-
ing three spirits; one, which she called Great Dick, was en-
closed in a wicker bottle the second, named Ijittle Dick, was
;
errand; this cat was with her but a while; but the weazel and
toad came and offered their services. The cat would kill kine,
the weazel would kill horses, the toad would plague men in their
bodies." Another witch had a spirit in the likeness of a yellow
dun cat, which first came to her, she said, as she sat by the fire,
when she had fallen out with a neighbor of hers, and wished the
A^engeance of God might fall on him and his. " The cat bade
her not be afraid, she would do her no harm, she had served a
dame five years in Kent, that was now dead, and if she would,
she would be her servant. '
And whereas,' said the cat, such a
'
man hath misused thee, if thou wilt I will plague him in his cat-
tle.' She sent the cat, which killed three hogs and one cow."
Another woman confessed " that she had a spirit which did abide
in a hollow tree, where was a hole, out of which he spake unto
her. And ever when she was offended with any, she went to
that tre^e and sent him to kill their cattle." The writer above
quoted, tell^ns that, "there was one Mother W., of Great T.,
which had a spirit like a weazel; she was offended highly with
one H. M. home she went, and called forth her spirit, which
;
lay in a pot of wool under her bed ; she willed him to go and
plague the man. He required what she would give h'm, and he
would kill H. M. She said she would give him a cock, which
she did, and he went, and the man fell sick with a great pain in
his belly, languished, and died."
WHITE WITCHES. 177
When they next come on the scene, we find that they have a
superior, to whom Shakspere gives the classic name of Hecate,
and by whose permission it appears that they exercise their arts.
Hecate meets the three witches
1st Witch. Why, how now, Hecnte? you look angrily.
Hec. Have not reason, beldames as you are,
T
Saucy and over-bold ? did you dai"e How
To trade and traffic ^vith Mncbeth,
Tn riddles, and affairs of death ;
foreknows that her death will happen that day three years at
midnight. next time we are introduced, the witches meet
The
in a field by moonlight, prepared to take their accustomed flight
and among the rest, Hecate ascends with her familiar imp :
of Goethe to bring on the scene all the marvels and all the
abominations of the witches' sabbath.
In the Tempest, the spiritual part of the plot is more delicate-
ly imaginative. Prospero is the magician in his most refined
character —a kind of transcendental Dr. Dee and Ariel is a ;
spirit that has been brought under the witches' power not a di- —
abolical imp, but one of the fairies or good people, a class we
have already seen figuring in the witchcraft cases in Scotland,
and which we shall now find under the same circumstances in
South Britain.
Hast thou forgot
The witch Sycorax. who with age and envy
foul
Was^' grown into a hoop ? hast thou forgot her?
This damned witch Sjcorax,
For mischiefs manifuLl, and sorceries terrible
To enter human hearing, from Argier,
Thou knowst, was banished for one thing she did,
;
* It may
be observed that the legend of Peter Fabel of Edmonton, on which
this play was founded, was
evidently identical with a German popular story, which
was turned English verse under the title of" The Smith of Apolda,'' and was
into
published in England in a periodical entitled " The Original," and reprinted in Mr.
Thorns' " Lays and Legends of Germany."
16
182 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
Under a cradle
did creep,
I
By day and when the child was asleep
;
I am shunned
And hated like a sickness made a scorn ;
CHAPTER XV;
ularly attended the witches' sabbath, which was lield three times
a year, and that the demon who presided at it, ended by burning
himself to make powder for the use of his agents in mischief.
In 1571, a mere conjurer, vv'ho played tricks upon cards, was
thrown into prison in Paris, forced to confess that he was an at-
16*
186 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
witchcraft, and from that time to the end of the century, the num-
ber of miserable persons put to death in France under the accu-
sation was very great. In the course only of fifteen years, from
1580 to 1595, and only in one province, that of Lorraine, the
president Remigius burnt nine hundred M^itches, and as many
more fled out of the country to save their lives and about the
;
close of the century, one of the French judges tells us that the
crime of witchcraft had become so common, that there were not
jails enough to hold the prisoners, or judges to hear their causes.
A trial which he had witnessed in 1568, induced Jean Bodin, a
learned physician, to compose his book " De la Demonomanie
des Sorceiers," which was ever aftervv^ard the text-book on this
subject.
Among the English witches, the evil one generally came
in person to seduce his victims, but in France and other coun-
tries, this seems to have been unnecessary, as each person, when
once initiated, became seized with an uncontrollable desire of ma-
king converts, whom he or she carried to the sabbath to be duly
enrolled. Bodin says, that one witch was enough to corrupt five
hundred honest persons. The infection quickly ran through a
family, and was generally carried down from generation to gen-
eration, which explained satisfactorily, according to the learned
commentator on deraonology just mentioned, the extent to "which
the evil had spread itself in his days. The novice, at his or her
reception, after having performed the preliminaries, and in gen-
eral received a new and burlesque rite of baptism, was marked
with the sign of the demon in some part of the body least ex-
posed to observation, and performed the first criminal act of com-
pliance which was afterwai'd to be so frequently repeated, the
evil one presenting himself on these occasions in the form of
either sex, according to that of the victim.
The sabbath was generally held in some wild and solitary
on the heights of mountains,
spot, often in the midst of forests or
at a great distance from the residence of most of the visiters.
The circumstances connected with it most difficult of proof, yet
of no small importance in support of the truth of the confessions,
was the reality and method of transport from one place to anoth-
er. The witches nearly all agreed in the statement that they di-
vested themselves of their clothes, and anointed their bodies with
an ointment made for that especial purpose. They then strode
across a stick, or any similar article, and, muttering a charm,
were carried through the air to the place of meeting in an incred-
ibly short space of time. Sometimes the stick was to be anoint-
188 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
ed as well as their persons. They generally left the house by
the window or by the chimney, which latter, for some reason or
other, was rather a favorite way of exit. Sometimes, however,
the wiich went out by the door, and there found a demon in the
shape of a goat, or at times of some other animal, who carried
her away on his back, and brought her home again after the
meeting was dissolved. In the confessions extorted from them
at their trials, the witches and sorcerers bore testimony to the
truth of all these particulars; but those who judged them, and
who wrote upon the subject, asserted that they had many other
independent proofs in corroboration.
We are assured by Bodin that a man who lived at the little
town of Loches, having observed that his wife frequently ab-
sented herself from the house in the night, became suspicious of
her conduct, and at last by his threats obliged her to confess that
she was a witch, and that she attended the sabbaths. To ap-
pease the anger of her husband, she agreed to gratify his curi-
osity by taking him with her to the next meeting, but she warned
him on no account whatever to allow the name of God or of
the Savior, to escape his lips. At the appointed time they
stripped and anointed themselves, and, after uttering the necessa-
ry formula, they were suddenly transported to the lai^des of Bor-
deaux, -at an immense distance from their own dwelling. The
husband there found himself in the midst of a great assembly of
both sexes in the same state of deshabille as himself and his wife,
and in one part he saw the devil in a hideous form but in the
;
the river side, and fled. At daybreak a youth of the. town, whom
she knew, passed near the spot, and she called to him by his
name. Terrified at the unexpected call, at first he was on the
point of leaving her with as liitle ceremony as the evil one had
done, till recognising the voice he went nearer, and was not a
little surprised to see the woman in such a position,
with dishe-
velled hair, and in a state nearly approaching to nudity, and asked
her how she came there. She replied, in evident confusion,
that she was seeking her ass. The young man observed that it
great severity, and tlien applied fire to the more sensitive parts,
wliich being without effect, he left her in the belief that she had
died suddenly. His astonishment was great when in the morn-
ing he found her in her own bed, in an evident state of great suf-
fering. When he asked what ailed her, her only answer was,
" Ha ! nion maistre, tant ni'avsz hatue .'" When further pressed,
however, she confessed that during the time her body lay in a
state of insensibility, she had been herself to the witches' sabbath,
and upon this avowal she was committed to prison. Bodin fur-
ther informs us that at Bordeaux, in 1571, an old woman, who
Avas condemned to ihe fire for witchcraft, had confessed that she
was transported to the sabbath in this manner. One of her
judges, the maitre-des-requetes, who was personally known to
Bodin, while she was under examination, pressed her to show
how this was effected, and released her from her feiters for that
purpose. She rubbed herself in different parts of the body with
" a certain grease," and immediately became stifif and insensihle,
and, to all appearance, dead. She remained in this state abotit^
five hours, and then as quickly revived, and told her inquisitors
a great number of extraordinary things, which showed that she
must have been spiritually transported to far distant places. Thus
testifieth Jean Bodin.
The description of the sabbath given by the witches differed
only in slight particulars of detail for their examinations were
;
of the meeting— had been transacted, a great banquet was laid out,
and the whole conlpany fell to eating and drinking and making mer-
ry. At times, every article of luxmy was placed before them, and
they feasted in the most smnptuous manner. Often, however,
the meats served on the table were nothing but toads and rats,
and other articles of a revolting nature. In general they had no
salt, and seldom bread. But, even when best served, the money
and the victuals furnished by the demons were of a most unsat-
isfactory character; a circumstance of which no rational explan-
ation is given. The coin, when brought forth by open daylight,
was generally found to be nothing better than dried leaves or bits
of dirt; and, however greedily they may have eaten at the ta-
ble, they commonly left the meeting in a state of exhaustion from
hunger.
The tables were next removed, and feasting gave way to wild
and uproarious dancing and reyelry. The common dance, or
Carole, of the middle ages appear to have been performed by par-
ties taking each other's hand in a circle, alternately a gentleman
and a lady. This, probably the ordinary dance among the peas-
antry, was the one generally practised at the sabbaths of the
witches, with this peculiarity, that their backs instead of their
faces were turned inward. The old writers endeavor to account
for this, by supposing that it was designed to prevent them from
seeing and recognising each other. But this, it is clear, was not
the only dance of the sabbath perhaps more fashionable ones
;
17
194 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
pets with the branches. The louder the instrument, the greater
satisfaction it gave ; and the dancing became wilder and wiUler,
initil it merged into a vast scene of confusion, and ended in
in rising into the air, he had just time to recognise one man as a
native of his own village. The story was soon made public, the
spot was visited, a circle on the grass where they had danced
was distinctly visible, with here and there the marks of hoofs.
The man who had been recognised was arrested, and his con-
fession led to the discovery and punishment of several of the
others, especially of the women.
Toward the end of the sixteenth century, the witchcraft in-
fatuationhad risen to its greatest height in France, and not only
the lower classes, but persons of the highest rank in society,
were liable to suspicions of dealing in sorcery. We need only
mention that such charges were publicly made against King
Henri III.* and Queen Catherine de Medicis, and that, early in
the following century, they became the ground of state trials
which had a fatal conclusion.
* The following account is taken from one of the libellous pamphlets against this
monarch, published by the partisans of the Ligne, under the title of" Les Sorcel-
leries de Henri de Valois, et les oblations qu'il faisoit au diable dans le bois de
Vincennes. Paris, 1589."
" On a trouv6 dernierement au bois de Vincennes deux satyres d'argent, de la
hauteur de quatre pieds. lis 6taient audevant d'lme croix d'or, au milieu de la-
quelle y avait enchass6 du bois de la vraie croix de notre seigneur Jesus Christ.
Les politiques [that is, the moderate party] disent, que c'etaient des chandeliers.
Ce qui fait croire le coniraire, c'est que, dans ces vases, il n'y avoit pas d'aiguille
qui passat pour y mettre un cierge ou une petite chandelle joint qu'ils tonrnaient
;
le derriere a ladite vraie croix. et que deux anges ou deux simples chandeliers y
eussent et6 plus d6cens que oes satyres, estimes par les payens eti'e des dieux des
for6ts, oil Ton tieut que les mauvais esprits se ti-oaveut plutot qu'en autres lieux.
THE WITCHES OF LABOURD. 197
CHAPTER XVI.
Ces monstres diaboliques ont 6t& vus par messienrs de la ville [the leaders of the
ligue]. . . Outre ces denx figares diaboliques, ou a tvouve une peau d'enfant,
.
laquelle avait ete corroyee et sur icelle, y avait anssi plasieurs mots de sorcellerie
;
n'etait que pour entendre a ses sorcelleries, et non pour prier Dieu."
Perhaps the t'W'o satyres were antiques, against which the peasantry had al-
waysa when people dug up the Roman bronzes or sculp-
prejudice. In early times,
broke them and threw them away in tl;e belief that they v.-ere instru-
tures, thej-
ments of magic. It appears from Mr. Collingwood Brace's excellent work on the
Roman wall, that this feeling still exists among the peasantry of Northumberland.
17*
193 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
they often Avent home on foot. A girl of Siboro, of the same age,
named Jeannette d'Abadie, stated that four years had then passed
since she was first taken to the sabbath by a woman named Gra-
tiane. She had since become tired of this life, and had watched
in the church of Siboro all night, in consequence of which the
demon came and took her away by day and that on Sunday the
;
13th of September, 1609, after watching all night, the evil one
came and took her away at mid-day, in church-time, as she was
laying asleep at home. S'^he v/ore round her neck a higa, or am-
iilet against fascination, which was made of leather, and repre-
sented a hand closed, the thumb passing between two of the fin-
gers ;it was an article in very common use. The demon tore
this from her neck, and threw it behind the door of her chamber
as they went out together.
Jeannette d'Abadie said that her conductor Gratiane often took
her to Newfoundland that they passed through the air, as though
;
they were flying, she holding by the robe of Gratiane and that
;
threw powders to poison the fish Avhich the poor mariners had
spread on the beach to dry. Another witch, Marie d'Aspil-
THE WITCHES OF LABOURD. 201
on her left shoulder, another sat on her right shoulder, and the
other two perched like birds on her wrists !
204 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
surgeon to examine the old women, while the girl was employed
upon the younger members of the sex. Their marks were dis-
covered by pinching and pricking them with a pin.
We might fill a volume with the strange stories told by these
Basque witches. Their alarm at the arrival of De Lancre and
his companion was not without reason, for within a short time
the arrests were so numerous, that it was hardly possible to pro-
vide prisons to hold them. Some of the prisoners confessed
that the devil himself was terrified, and they said that he had
made several attempts to kill or bewitch the two commissioners,
but that he had found himself powerless against their persons.
From judging the lower orders, De Lancre and his companion
proceeded to the better class, and especially to the priests, of
whose character in Labourd he gives us a very low estimate.
The first they arrested was an old man, a priest of Bayonne,
who confessed, and was condemned to death. The execution
of this man caused a great sensation at Bayonne and throughout
18
206 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
Dolci paratusotio.
MAGIC IN SPAIN. 20f
CHAPTER XVII.
then they feasted on bread, wine, and cheese after this was
;
done, their male companions v/ere changed into goats, and bore
them through the air to the place where they were to work mis-
chief; they said they had poisoned several persons by the order
of Satan, and that for this purpose he introduced them into their
houses through the windows or doors. They had general assem-
blies the night before Easter, and on the grand festivals of the
church, at which they indulged in all the excesses of the witch-
es' sabbath. We are assured by the historian who has recorded
these events (Don Prudencio de Sandoval) that the commission-
er took one of the witches and offered her pardon if she would
perform before him the operation of sorcery, so as to fly away in
his sight. To this proposal she agreed, and having obtained pos-
session of the box of ointment which was found upon her when
arrested, she went up into a tower with the commissioner, and
placed herself in front of a window. A number of other per-
sons, we are assured, were present. She began by anointing
Avith her unguent the pahxi of her left hand, her wrist and elbow,
and by rubbing it under her arm, and on the groin and left side.
She then said with a loud voice, " Art thou there ?" All the
spectators heard a voice in the air replying, " Yes, I am here."
The woman then began to descend the wall of the tower with
her head downward, crawling on her hands and feet like a lizard ;
and when she was half way down, she took a start into the air,
and flew away in view of all the spectators, who followed her
with their eyes till she was no longer visible. The commission-
er offered a reward to anybody who would bring her back, and
two days afterward she was brought in by some shepherds who
had found her in the fiePds. When asked by the commissioner
why she did not fly away far enough to be out of the reach of
her pursuers, she said that " her master" would not carry her
further than three leagues, at which distance he left her in the
fields where the shepherds found her. The witches arrested on
this occasion, after being found guilty by the secular judges, were
handed over to the inquisition of Estella, and there condemned
to be whipped and imprisoned.
The moment the attention of the inquisition was thus drawn
to the crime of sorcery, the prevalence of this superstition in the
Basque provinces became notorious and Charles V., rightly
;
somewhat greater than that of the moon, but less than that of the
sun, which served to illuminate the assembly. His eyes were
TIME OF THE SABBATH. 213
large and round, and terrible to look at his beard like that of a
;
goat, and the lower part of his body had the form of that ani-
mal his feet and hands were like those of a man, except that
:
the ends of his fingers were curved like those of a bird of prey
and ended in long pointed nails, and his toes were like those of
a goose. His voice bore some resemblance to the braying of
an ass, his words being ill articulated, and in a low .and iiTegu-
lar tone.
Such was the demon of the Basque superstitions. His wor-
ship was conducted with the same forms and ceremonies as in
Labourd. The hour of meeting was nine o'clock in the evening,
and the assembly generally broke up at twelve. After the wor-
ship of the demon, followed a travestie of the Christian mass, at
which the king and queen of the sorcerers officiated as priests.
After the mass was finished, came the usual scene of licentious-
ness. Many.of their ceremonies were accompanied 'with popu-
lar rhymes in Spanish. Thus when the witches and sorcerers
were married together after the devil's mass, the devil said to
them :
After the scene last alluded to, the tables were spread, and we
are told that they were always covered with dirty table-cloths.
Their favorite viands were the flesh of men, women or children,
recently dead, whom they had dug up from their graves, and it
was generally the nearest relatives ol the deceased who assisted
in preparing them for the feast. Little demons served at table.
After the feast, they all danced together in the wildest confusion.
At one of their sabbaths there was a dancing-girl, who, to the
sound of castanets (c.astanuelas), made such extraordinary capers,
that all the witches were in admiration, and one of them ex-
claimed, " Jesus, how she leaps !" on which the whole scene
disappeared, and the person who had uttered the imprudent ex-
clamation was left alone to find her way home how she could.
At the next meeting she was severely beaten for her offence.
Each new witch had a toad given to her, which was her imp,
and always accompanied her to her meetings. From this ani-
mal she extracted her most deadly poison. Befoi'e they left the
214 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
sabbath, the demon preached to them on the duties they had con-
tracted toward him, exhorted Ji^m to go and injure their fellow-
creatures, and to practise every kind of wickedness, and gave
them powders and liquors for poisoning and destroying. He
often accompanied them himself when some great evil was to be
done, and to carry their purposes into effect they changed them-
selves into the forms of vermin, or of animals, or birds of prey.
In these expeditions, when they took place by night, the demon
carried the arm of an unbaptized infant, lit at the ends of the fin-
gers which served the place of a candle or torch. When they
entered people's houses they threw a powder on the faces of
the inmates, who were thrown thereby into so deep a slumber
that nothing could wake them, until the witches were gone.
Sometimes the demon opened the mouths of the people in their
beds, and the sorcerer placed something on the tongue which
produced this sleep. The charm was then accompanied with
the words
'' De las movtiferas aguas
Dos trnEjds dizen te appllco,
Con quien Inspolvos de sagas
Y mueras rabiaiido tisico."
adopts entirely the opinion that the acts confessed by the witches
were imaginary he attributes them partly to the method in
;
which the examinations were carried on, and to the desire of the
ignorant people examined to escape by saying what seemed to
please their persecutors, and partly to the effects of the ointments
and draughts which they had been taught to use, and which were
composed of ingredients that produced sleep, and acted upon the
imagination and the mental faculties.*
CHAPTER XVIII.
day that the pope would that night die a violent death. It ap-
pears that his holiness had an intrigue with a lady whose hus-
band held a high office in the papal court. The latter was
afraid to complain openly, but he was none the less eager for
revenge, and he joined with some desperate ruffians in a plot to
take away the pope's life. The demon was of course rejoiced
at the prospect of evil, but his friend the cure determined to
cheat him and save the head of the church from the danger
which threatened him. He pretended to be seized with an
eager desire to proceed to Rome, that he might hear the rumors
to which such a remarkable occurrence must give rise, and to
witness the pope's funeral. The desire was no sooner expressed
than it was gratified. On his arrival at the eternal city, the cure
hastened to the papal palace, forced his way into the presence
of the sovereign pontiff, and told him the whole particulars of
the plot against his life, and thus defeated the designs of the con-
spirators. After having thus outwitted him, the cure wished to
have no further intercourse with Satan he made a voluntary
;
upon which Zequiel took him thither and back in so short a space
of time that his absence was not perceived by his friends at
Rome.
It was not long before he again returned to Spain, where, about
the year 1516, the cardinal of Santa Cruz, Don Bernardino de Car-
bajal, consulted him on a subject of some importance. A Spanish
lady named Rosales had complained to Don Bernardino that her
nights were disturbed by a phantom which appeared in the form
of a murdered man. The cardinal had sent his physician. Dr.
Morales, who watched at night with the lad}^, but saw no appa-
rition, although she gave him notice of its appearance, and point-
ed out the place where it stood. Don Bernardino hoped to know
more of the matter by the means of Torralva, and he requested
him to go with the physician Morales to pass the night in the
lady's house. They went together and an hour after midnight
they heard the lady's cry of alarm, and Avent into her room,
where, as before, Morales saw nothing. But Torralva, who was
better acquainted with the spiritual world, perceived a figure re-
sembling a dead man, behind which appeared another apparition
in the form of a woman. He asked with a firm voice, "What
dost thou seek here ?" to which the apparition replied, " A treas-
ure," and immediately disappeared. Torralva consulted Zequiel
on this subject, and was informed that there was buried under the
house a corpse of a man who had been stabbed to death with a
poignard.
Torralva v/as soon at Rome again, and among his more inti-
mate friends, there was Don Diego de Zun'ga, a relative of the
duke of Bejar, and brother to Don Antonio, grand prior of the
order of St. John, in Castile. In 1519, the two friends returned
to Spain together. On their way, at Barcelonetta near Turin,
while they were walking and conversing with the secretary Aze-
vedo (who had been adjutant-general of the Spanish armies in
Italy and Savoy), Azevedo and Zuiiiga thought they saw some-
thing indefinable pass by Torralva's side. He told them it was
his angel Zequiel, who had approached him to whisper in his
ear. Zuiiiga had a great desire to see Zequiel, but Torralva
could not prevail with the latter to show himself. At Barcelona,
Torralva saw in the house of the canon, Juan Garcia, a book of
chiromancy, and in the margin of one of the leaves was written
a magical process to enable a person to gain money at play.
Zuiiiga^ who appears to have been a man of no very exalted mo-
rality, wished to make himself master of this art, and Torralva
copied the characters, and told his friend that he must write them
TORRALVA'S VOYAGE TO ROME. 221
with his own hand on paper, using for ink the blood of a bat, and
that the writing must be performed on a Wednesday, because that
day was dedicated to Mercury. This charm he was to wear on
his person when at play.
In 1520, Torralva went again to Rome. Being at Valladolid,
he told Diego de Zuiiiga of his intentions, informing him that he
had the means of travelling there with extraordinary rapidity,
that he had but to place himself astride on a stick, and he was
carried through the air, guided by a cloud of fire. On his arri-
val at Rome, he saw the cardinal of Volterra and the grand prior
of the order of St. John, who were very earnest with him that
he should give them his familiar spirit. Torralva entreated Ze-
quiel to comply with their wish, but in vain. In 1525, Zequiel
recommended him to return to Spain, assuring him that he would
obtain the place of physician to the infanta Eleanora, queen dow-
ager of Portugal, and subsequently consort to Frangois I., of
France. Torralva obeyed the suggestion of his monitor, and ob-
tained the promised appointment.
It was after his return to Spain, and before he obtained this
appointment, tliat a circumstance occurred which added greatly
to Torralva's celebrity. On the evening of the fifth of May, of
the year last mentioned (1525), the physician received a visit
from Zequiel, who told him that Rome would be taken next day
by the troops of the emperor,* and Torralva desired to be taken
to Rome to see this important event. They left Valladolid to-
* Catapa, who gives an account of this voya?e according to the popular tradition,
makes Torealva leave the admiral's town of Medina de Rioseco instead of Valla-
dolid. He says that Torralva was sitting pensive and sad in his chamber contem-
plating the sky, when Zequiel appeared to him, who is described thus :
Zequiel asked him why he was pensive, to which he replied that he was puzzled
with the stars. The familiar then informed him that the constable of Bourbon was
before Rome, which would be taken next day.
Capata imagined that the familiar might be a demon, and that he would natural-
ly delight in the hoiTors which attended the sack of Rome.
19*
222 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
CHAPTEU XIX.
wait the
The lady, however, was too ardent in her passion to
perhaps she was not fully acquainted
effect of this intrigue, or
with the designs of her relatives. She made her confidante ot
widow of a physician of respectability a
Mrs Anne Turner, the
beauty, and who was at this time the
woman not deficient in
attendant on the prince.
mistress of Sir Arthur Mainwaring, an
countess re-
With this worthy companion in her evil doings, the
who, as has been
paired to Dr. Simon Foreman, the magician,
stated, was living at Lambeth, and
with whom Mrs. Turner ap-
already acquainted. It was soon agreed be-
pears to have been
bewitch the Lord
tween them that Foreman should by his magic
should be irrevo-
Rochester, and so turn his affections that they
Essex, and he was in the same way to in-
cably fixed on Lady
Mrs. Turner. The
fluence 'Sir Arthur Mainwaring toward
between the ladies and the conjurer became now
intercourse
and images to eflect
frequent, and he used all his skill in charms
At a subsequent period Foreman's wife
deposed
their desire.
in court
" thatMrs. Turner and her husband would sometimes
howres together ;'
be locked upp in his studye for three or four
spoke of Foreman
and the countess became so intimate that she
as her " sweet father." x i -n i. ^ i,
'
—
but thou wilt much repent it.' 'Yea, but how long first?'
— I shall die,' said he,
'
'ere Thursday night.' Monday came, all was well. Tuesday came, he not sick.
Wednesday ca.nie, and still he was well with which his impertinent wife did
;
much twit him iu his teeth. Thursday came, and dinner was ended, he veiy well
he went down to the water side, and'took a pair of oars to go to some buildings he
was in hand with in Puddle-dock. Being in the middle of the Thames, he pres-
ently fell down, only saying, An impost, an impost,' and sp died.
' A most sad
storm of wind immediately following."
228 SORCERY AND MAGIO.
yet she persisted in her designs, and after Foreman's death, an-
other conjurer was employed, one Doctor Lavoire or Savory, as
the name is differently written in different manuscripts.
But a more powerful agent than the conjurers was now brought
in. We have no means of ascertaining at what time King James
was made acquainted with the amorous intrigues of his favo-
first
as the latter was as anxious to get the lady Essex away
rite, but,
from her husband as she was to leave him, the English Solomon
resolved that both should be gratified. The countess was in-
structed to bring against the earl of Essex a charge of conjugal
incapacity, a commission of reverend prelates of the church was
appointed to sit in judgment, over whom the king presided in per-
son, and a jury of matrons was found to give their opinion that
the lady Essex was a maiden. James seems to have gloated over
this revolting process vfith the same degree of pleasure which
he had derived from the examination of the witches in Edinbor-
ough the earl of Essex appears to have made no opposition, and
;
ber 26), King James gave the lady to his minion at the altar, and
the marriage was celebrated by the court with unusual splendor.
There was one circumstance connected with this guilty mar-
SIR THOMAS OVERBURY. 229
out by another. It was now observed that the king began to cast
20
230 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
his eye upon George Villiers, who was then cup-bearer, and
seemed a modest and courteous youth. But King James had a
fashion, that he would never admit any one to nearness about
himself, but such a one as the queen should commend to him,
and make some suit in that behalf, in order that, if the queen af-
terward, being ill-treated, should complain of this dear one, he
might make this answer, It is come of yourself, for you were
'
the party that commended him unto me.' Our old master took
delight in things of this nature." The queen hated Somerset,
and after a good deal of communications and intriguing, she con-
sented to act the part required and Villiers was appointed a
;
" The king with this took his farewell for a time of London,
and was accompanied with Somerset to Royston, where no soon-
er he brought him, but the earle instantly took his leave, little
imagining what viper lay among the herbs. Nor must I forget
to let you know how perfect the king was in the art of dissimO-
lation, or, to give it his own phrase, kingcraft. The earle of
Somerset never parted from him with more seeming aiFection
TRIAL OF THE EAEL OF SOMERSET. 231
The earl was placed under arrest on his return to London, but
instead of proceeding to an examination of the two principal
offenders, the minor actors in the tragedy were first brought to
trial. The object in view from the beginning appears to have
been to bring forward as little evidence as possible, but to use
every means of inducing the various persons accused to con-
fess themselves guilty and accuse their supposed employers.
Although at first some of them obstinately denied any knowledge
of the crime imputed to them, they all ended by confessing what-
ever was required, influenced either by hope or fear, and when
their confessions had been obtained, they were hurried to the
gallows with as little delay as possible. We can hardly doubt,
from the evidence, that the countess of Somerset had been anx-
ious for Overbury's death, and that she had suborned persons to
poison him, but it certainly did not appear by the evidence that
he had been poisoned by them.
During these trials the public excitement was so great that
Westminster hall was intensely crowded, and immense sums
were given for places on the scaffolding erected for the occasion.
This was especially the case on the 7th of November, 1615, the
day when Mrs. Turner was arraigned, and a feeling of supersti-
tious fear seized on the assemblage when on that occasion the
insti-uments of Foreman's conjurations were exposed to view. It
appears that when Mrs. Turner was arrested, she sent her maid
in haste to Foreman's widow, to warn her that the privy council
would probably give orders to search her house, and to urge her
232 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
to burn any of her husband's papers that were calculated to com-
promise her. Mrs. Foreman saw that the trouble her husband
foretold had arrived, and she followed the suggestion thus con-
ve}'ed to her, but a few documents were preserved that were now
brought into court, and among these were the two guilty letters
addressed by Lady Essex from Chartley, to Mrs. Turner and
Foreman, which according to some accounts, had been found in
the conjuror's pockets after his sudden death. The various ar-
ticles which Avere seized in Foreman's house related to the at-
tempts to enchant the earls of Somerset and Essex, and not to
the murder of Overbury. " There was shewed in court cer-
teine pictures of a man and a woman made in lead, and also a
mould of brasse wherein they were cast, a blacke scarfe alsoe full
of white crosses, which Mrs. Turner had in her custodie ;" in ad-
dition to vi^hich there were " iachanted paps and other pictures."
These might be innocent enough, if they had not been fol-
lowed by a parcel of Foreman's written charms and conjura-
tions. " In some of these parchments," says the contemporary
report of the trial in the manuscript from which we are quoting,
" the devill had particular names, who were conjured to torment
the Lord Somersett and Sir Arthur Mannering, if theire loves
should not contynue, the one to the countesse, the other to Mrs.
Turner." The horror caused by these, jr§velations was so great,
that the multitude assembled in the hall involuntarily led into the
delusion that the demons were present among them, witnessing
the exposure of their victims, and suddenly in the midst of this
sensation, " there was heard a crack from the scaffold which car-
ryed a great feare, tumult, and commotion, among the spectators
and through the hall, every one feareing hurt, as if the devill had
bine present and growen angry to have his workemanshipp
knowne by such as were not his owne schoUars." The reporter
adds, " There was alsoe a note showed in courte, made by Doc-
tor Foreman, and written in parchment, signifying what ladyes
loved what lords in the court, but the lord chiefe-justice would
not suffer it to be read openly in courte." This "note," or book,
is understood to have been a diary of Foreman's dealings with
the persons implicated and, according to the scandal of the
;
much light on contemporary history. The immorality of the conjuror's private char-
acter is sufficiently evinced by that portion of his secret diaries privately printed by
Mr. Halliwell.
TE,IAL OF THE EARL OF SOMERSET. 233
than the other prisoners. The conduct of the king and the earl
on this occasion was calculated to excite extraordinary suspi-
cions ;for the reports of the trial and the version of the story
which came before the public were evidently drawn up for the
purpose of deceiving. An attempt has been made to throw some
light on these mysterious transactions by Mr. Amos, who has ex-
amined the documents relating to this trial preserved in the state-
paper office, and has collected the materials which we are now
to use.*
The letters of Bacon, v/hose conduct throughout these trials
was, to say the least, most unmanly, show us that the king looked
forward to the trial of Somerset with the greatest uneasiness,
and that every effort was made to induce him to admit the justice
of the prosecution, even by the promise of the king's pardon.
Bacon writes to Sir George Villiers, on the second of May,
" That same little charm, which may be secretly infused into
Somerset's ear some few hours before his trial, was excellently
well thought of by his majesty, and I do approve it both for mat-
ter and time only, if it seems good to his majesty ... I could
;
nearest friends, should not be trusted with it, for they may go
* The Grand Oyer of Poisoiiiag: the Trial of the Earl of Somerset, for the Poi-
soniag of Sir Thomas Overbuiy in the Tower of London. By Andrew Amos, Esq.
London, Bentley, 1846.
20*
234 .
SORCERY AND MAGIC.
too far, and perhaps work contrary to his majesty's ends. Those
which occur to me are my Lord Hay,myLord Burleigh, of England
I mean, and Sir Robert Carre." On May 5th, Bacon writes to
Villiers, after stating his opinion that the " resuscitation of Som-
erset's fortune" would be impolitic " But yet the glimmering of
:
that which the king hath done to others, by way of talk to him,
can not hurt, as I conceive but I would not have that part of the
;
while the countess and her husband were kept perfectly in the
secret as to what course the other was pursuing, or what evi-
dence existed against the other, they were still played off against
each other. Bacon says, on the tenth of May, " It is thought
that at the day of her trial the lady will confess the indictment
which, if she do, no evidence ought to be given. But because
it shall not be a dumb show, and for his majesty's honor in so
tliat I protest upon my honor, my end in this is for his and his
wife's good you will do well, likewise, of yourself to cast out
;
imto him, that you fear his wife shall plead weakly for his in?io-
cence, and that you find the commissioners have, you know not
how, some secret assurance that, in the end, she will confess of
him; but this must only be as from yourself, and therefore you
must not let him know that I have written to you ... if he re-
main obstinate, I desire not that you should trouble me with an
answer for it is to no end, and no news is better than evil news."
;
the eve of the trial, which will be best given in his own-words ;
" And now, for the last act, enters Somerset himselfe on the stage,
who (being told, as the manner is, by the lieutenant, that he
must provyde to goe next day to his tryal) did absolutely refuse
it, and said they should carry him in his bed — that the king had
assured him he should not come to any tryal, neither durst the
king bring him to tryal. This was in an high strain, and in a
language not well undei-stood by Sir George Moore (then lieu-
tenant in Elwaies his room), that made Moore quiver and shake ;
and however he was accounted a wise man, yet he was neare at
his wits end. Yet away goes Moore to Greenewich^ as late as
itwas (being twelve at night), bounseth at the back stayres as if
mad, to whom came Jo. Loveston, one of the grooms, out of his
bed, inquires the reason of that distemper at so late a season.
Moore tells him he must speak with the king. Loveston re-
plyes, ' He is quiet,' (which in the Scottish dialect, is fast
asleep). Moore says, 'You must awake him.' Moore was
called in (the chamber left to the king and Moore). He tells
the king those passages, and desired to be directed by the king,
for he was gone beyond his owne reason, to heare such bold
and undutifui expressions from a faulty subject against a just
sovereigne. The king fails into a passion of tears : On my
'
soule, Moore, I wot not what to do! Thou art a wise man ;
help me in this great strait, ajad thou shalt finde thou dost it for
a thankful master ;' Avith other sad expressions. Moore leaves
the king in that passion, but assures him he will prove the ut-
most of his wit to serve his majesty and was really rewarded
;
withall a peremptory order, if that Somerset did any way fly out
on the king, tliey should instantly hoodwink him with their
cloaks, take him violently from the bar, and carry him away;
for which he v/ould secure them from any danger, and they
should not want also a bountiful reward. But the earle, finding
himself overreached, recollected a better temper, and went on
calmly in his Iryall, where he held the company until seven at
night. But who had seen the king's restlesse motion all that
day, sending to every boat he saw landing at the bridge, cursing
all thai came without tidings, would have easily judged all was
not right, and there had been some grounds for his feares of
Somerset's boldnesse but at last one bringing him word he was
;
condemned and the passages, all was quiet. This is the very
relation from Moore's owne mouth, and this told verbatim in
Wanstaad Parke, to two gentlemen (of which the author was
one), who were both left by him to their own freedome, without
engaging them, even in those times of high distemperatures,
unto a faithful secresie in concealing it, yet, though he failed ia
his wisdome, they failed not in that worth inherent in every
noble spirit, never speaking of it till after the king's death."
Somerset's trial was, in every respect, a mere mockery of jus-
tice. He was tried, not by his peers in parliament, but by a
select number of peers chosen for the occasion, who were his
personal enemies or creatures of the court. His judges again
urged him to plead guilty, intimating that his wife had made a
confession that implicated him, and holding out the prospect of
a full pardon as the reward of his confession. When he still in-
sisted upon his innocence, they brought against him no witnesses,
but merely adduced as evidence the confessions of the persons
who had already been hanged, and who had never been confront-
ed with the man they accused. On the contrary, one gentle-
man. Sir John Lidcot, no friend of Somerset's, having presumed,
on the scaflbld, to ask Weston, who it was pretended had deliv-
ered the poison, whether he had poisoned Overbury or not, was
thrown into the Tower and treated harshly. Late in the after-
noon the earl began an able and eloquent defence, in which he
explained away or denied every circumstance adduced to show
that he knew of the murder ; and he insisted that his assertions
ought to have greater weight with the court than those of con-
demned felons, proved by their own confessions to be persons
of base character, and whom he had no opportunity of cross ex-
amining. The peers found him guilty.
When we look even at the report of Somerset's trial, which
238 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
have given important evidence on the trial, had mere truth been
sought, were certainly kept out of the way.
Mr. Amos points out the improbability of the whole story of
the poisoning, as it was made the groundwork of the trial, and
we may fairly doubt if it were not a fiction to cover circumstan-
ces which could not safeh^ be revealed. We learn from the nar-
rative of Sir Anthony Weldon, that Franklin, one of the minor
agents, confessed that Sir Thomas Overbury was smothered by
him and Weston, and was not poisoned. " The suspicious cir-
cumstance that none of Franklin's examinations taken before his
trial are forthcoming, gives some countenance to this report."
Mr. Amos's book contains a mass of evidence on this and other
points which my space will not allow me to transfer to this re-
view of the subject.
It must be confessed that, even with the important additional
evidence thus brought to light, the history of Sir Thomas Over-
bury's murder is still clouded in mystery. The conclusion to
which we are naturally led by the foregoing facts is, that any
satisfactory evidence which could have been brought forward
would have involved other accomplices, whose names it was ne-
cessary to keep carefully from public suspicion, and that the real
object of the prosecution was the ruin and disgrace of the favor-
ite, whom at last James, actuated by fear or some other motive,
did not sacrifice to the utmost extent of the wishes of his ene-
mies. The presumption is indeed strong that the murder was
authorized by King James himself. This supposition, at least,
explains various circumstances which are otherwise totally inex-
plicable. We thus understand why the minor agents in the plot,
and especially the unfortunate lieutenant of the Tower (Sir Ger-
vais Helwysse), and Overbury's jailer, Weston, were so summa-
rily despatched out of the world. We thus understand the tam-
pering with their depositions, which, with all the arrangements
for the trial, were made according to the king's own directions.
And still more, we understand James's anxiety to prevent Som-
erset's anticipated revelations.
With this new view of the subject, we are led further to ask
for a reason for this extraordinary state murder, and here at
present we are left entirely to conjecture. The common story
that Overbury's murder was a mere act of revenge for his oppo-
sition to the marriage of Somerset with the countess of Essex,
has always appeared to me to be in the highest degree improba-
ble, when we consider the part he appears to have previously
acted in promoting Somerset's amours, and the part which he
240 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
knew the king was acting in promoting the marriage. It- now
appears in the light of a cover for some other transactions, in-
vented probably by the king, but in which Somerset acquiesced
in the trial, because it did not necessarily involve his own guilt
(as he only acknowledged to having been the means of sending
Overbury to the Tower), and because he could not confute it
without making revelations which he had then determined not to
make. It is certain from passages of contemporary letters and
papers, that, at the time when Sir Thomas Overbury Avas com-
mitted to the Tower, no such excuse for his committal was talked
of, but that, on the contrary, it was looked upon generally as a
mysterious transaction in which the favorite had no direct share,
except that some persons imagined that the anger of the king to-
ward his friend portended a diminution in the influence of the
favorite himself. A Mr. Packer, in a letter from the court to
Sir Ralph Winwood, dated April 22, 1613, mentions that the
king sent the lord-chancellor and Lord Pembroke to off'er an
" embassage" to Sir Thomas Overbury, which Sir Thomas im-
mediately refused, and that, some said, " he added some other
speech which was very ill taken," and that thereupon the king
sent for the council, and after making an angry speech, gave
orders to them to send Overbury to prison. .Other reasons were
also suggested. A courtier, in a letter dated the 6th of May,
1613, writes, "Some say, Lord Rochester took Sir T. Over-
bury's committing to heart. Others talk as if it were a great
diminution of his favor and credit, which the king doubting,
would not have it so construed but the next day told the council
;
bury is still where he was (in the Tower), and as he was, with-
out any alteration; the viscount Rochester no way sinking in
point of favor, which are two strange consistents." The earl
of Southampton, writing to Sir Ralph Winwood, on the 4th of
August, 1613,-says, "• And much ado there hath been to keep Sir
Thomas Overbury from a public censure of banishment and loss
of oflice, such a rooted hatred lyeth in the king's heart toward him.
The most probable supposition that we can make is, that
Overbury was possessed of important royal secrets, which the
king had reasons for fearing he might disclose, or that he had
been a participator in crimes or vices which made him a danger-
ous person. According to hints thrown out by Mr. Amos, the dis-
LA MARECHALE D'ANCRE. 241
CHAPTER XX.
LA MARECHALE d'aNCRE.
dressed herself, and went to bed, hiding under her her own jew-
els, and the jewels of the crown, which were intrusted to her
care, to save them. But the assassins came and, dragging her
roughly out of her bed, carried off all the jewelry and whatever
they found in the room of value, as lawful plunder. The same
day the king gave D'Ancre's staff of marechal to the baron de
Vitry, and the others were all largely recompensed. The es-
tates of the Concinis were granted to the due de Luynes. The
queen-mother saw that her government was at an end, and she
quietly resigned herself to her fate she was exiled from court,
;
of the murdered favorite had been carried off by some of his fol-
lowers, and was buried secretly and by night in the church of
St. Germain I'Auxerrois. Next morning some traitor gave in-
formation to the Parisians, and pointed out the place where he
was interred. The populace rose tumultuously, hurried to the
church, and, in spite of the remonstrances of the guardians of the
church, who appealed to their respect for the dead, they forced
their way in, broke up the floor, and tearing open the grave — it
was said, with their finger-nails broke the coffin, and drew the
body naked into the street. There they dragged it along fero-
ciously through mud and dirt, till they reached the head of the
Pont Neuf, where stood a gallows, which had been erected by
the marechal's orders. They suspended the corpse on this gal-
lows and let it hang there a short time, during which they cut
off the nose and ears, and otherwise mutilated it, with horrible
curses and vociferations, obliging everybody they met to join in
shouting, vive le roi ! Then they took it down, and dragged it
to the bronze statue of Henri IV., where it was passed through
a fire, which had been hastily made for the purpose. Thence
the mob, continually increasing in numbers and ferocity, dragged
the body to the place before the hotel of the marechal, in the
faubourg St. Germain, where they repeated their outrages, beat-
ing the corpse with stones and sticks, amid the most horrible
yells and screams. The same scene was repeated in front of
the marechal's lodgings at the Louvre. It is said that the king,
who was looking on from the balcony of the Louvre, encouraged
the mob. After similar exhibitions in all the public places of
Paris, the mutilated and disfigured body was at last carried to
the place of the Greve, where a large fire was ready to receive
it. The populace had become savage with drink, and before the
21*
246 SORCERY AND MAGIC,
only showed the interest the favorite took in the fate of the royal
family, were looked upon as instruments of sorcery. It was
further reported abroad, to increase the popular hatred, that they
found in her cabinet a quantity of books of magic, with virgin
parchment, and a great number of magical characters.*
On several occasions between the end of April and the begin-
ning of July, the marechale was put to the torture, for the pur-
pose of compelling her to confess that she had bewitched the
queen-mother, but she bore it all with firmness. It is said, that
when asked what were the charms she used to gain possession
of the queen's affections, she replied proudly, that it was but the
power of a weak mind over a strong one. The proofs against
her were, however, pronounced to be sufficient to convict her of
D'avoir desus la France vomy tant de veniii ! •
Peuple, dress6s un feu, pour tjrusler la sorciere
Jett^s la cendre au vent, escart^s la poussiere,
GLu'nn luy fasse de mesme qu'on a faict au faquiii.
* One of the scurrilous pamplilets published after the assassination of the mar6-
chal d'Ancre, uuder the title of ' La Medee de In France, depeinie en la personne
de la marqii'he d' Aricre," tells us, " Ilsnnt ti'ouve dajis son cabinet quantite de livres
de magie, du parchemia vieree, et grand nombre de caracteres."
248 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
when she was led to execution on the 8th of July, she submitted
to her fate with firmness and resignation. The fury of the Pa-
risian mob had itself abated, and the hated Italian favorite be-
came on the scaffold an object of general commiseration.
CHAPTER XXI.
LOUIS GAUFRIDI.
belief which gained ground in the latter half of the sixteenth cen-
tury, that people under the influence of witchcraft were possessed
with demons in the same manner as the demoniacs of the New
Testament, was too favorable to their plans to be neglected.
Perhaps a great number of the catholic clergy believed consci-
entiously in the reality of these' possessions, but in the more re-
markable cases which have been chronicled, the patients were
evidently persons tutored for the occasion and upon the evidence
;
lieved that they had expelled the demon by their prayers, and
printed a relation of it. The civil power in this case was more
elfectual in establishing truth than the ecclesiastical, for the pre-
tended demoniac confessed before two justices of the peace that
it was an imposture, and she explained the way in which she
had deceived the two clergymen. In 1579, a Welch girl, named
Elizabeth Orton, pretended to fall into trances, and see visions,
which were published with great solemnity by some Roman
catholic priests; but she also was detected, and made a public
confession in Chester cathedral. Two years afterward, another
case of pretended demoniacs, in which some Jesuits were impli-
cated, was similarly exposed. In 1598, a protestant clergyman,
named William Darrell, made a great noise by his pretended
dispossessing of demoniacs in Nottinghamshire but his practice
;
—
whole the demons were to be compelled to give some open
testimony to the truth of the Romish faith. Sometimes, he says,
the demons are very obstinate, but the exorciser vv^as to perse-
vere day after day with great patience, and, above all, he was to
endeavor to obtain possession of the instruments of sorcery,
Avhich being burnt, would greatly wealten the power of the evil
one. Finally, he directs t?iat the demoniacs should, if possible,
be exorcised in an open church, before as large a congregation
of people as possible.
These doctrines became in France and other countries the
groundwork for extraordinary cases of individual persecution, of
which the one I am now going to relate was not the least re-
markable.
At Aix, in Provence, there was a* convent of Ursuline nuns.
It was one of the poorest of the monastic orders of females, for
which reason they were allowed several ways of gaining a live-
lihood ; and they seem to have been easily made the tools of the
priests. Among the Ursulines of Aix there was, in the year 1610,
a young lady named Magdalen de la Palude, who appears then
to have been a new convert. She was the daughter of the sieur
de la Palude, a Proven(jal gentleman, who lived in the neighbor-
hood of Marseilles. Magdalen had not been long among the sis-
ters of St. Ursula before she was seized with trances, and these
soon communicated themselves to one of the nuns named Louise
Capeau, whom she had chosen to be her intimate friend, and
subsequently to some of their companions, ^t was evident they
were possessed, and the superior of the priest^proceeded to exor-
cise them in a little chapel, but to no purpose, and for a full year
the demons continued obstinate.
Among the mountains, about three leagues from Aix, is the
cave of La Sainte Baume, or " the holy cavern," in which Mary
Magdalen, according to the popish tradition, was said to have
passed her latter days, and which was now looked upon as a
A^ery holy place of pilgrimage. A convent had been founded on
the spot, dedicated to the two patron saints of Provence, St.
Magdalen and St. Maximin, the prior of which, at the time these
events occurred, was Sebastian Michaelis, who was of sufficient
importance to hold the ofSce of an inquisitor of the faith. The
superior of the priests of Aix, finding his own exorcisms of no
avail, applied to the inquisitor Michaelis, by whose direction the
two patients, Magdalen de la Palude and Louise Capeau, were
carried to the Sainte Baume. The demons now became more
tractable, and the exorciser learned that Magdalen was possessed
THE SPIRITS EXORCISSD. 251
them out by an opening over the choir, but they were prevented.
In the course of a day or two the exorcisms began to produce
their effect, and on the 7th 0/ December, Verrine, who was the
weaker demon, and had possession of Sister Louise, was com-
pelled to talk. He said that Louise was possessed by three dev-
ils, himself and two others, named Gresil and Sonneillon. Next
day Verrine gave a long account of the beauty, merits, and glory
of the Virgin Mary. Meanwhile Beelzebub, who possessed Sister
Magdalen, was enraged at the informations given by his fellow-
demon, and during his discourse on the merits of the Virgin
Mary, he began to bellow like a mad bull, turning his victim's
head and eyes in dreadful contortions, and taking off one of her
shoes, threw it at Verrine and struck Sister Louise on the head.
On the 9th of December, the demon Verrine accused Sister Mag-
dalen of being a witch, and exhorted her to repentance, but he said
that Sister Louise was innocent. Beelzebub was again turbulent,
and threatened Verrine with punishment, but the latter treated
his menaces with contempt he said he owed obedience to Beel-
;
zebub when they were in hell together, but that under circum-
stances like the present he was his equal. On the lOlh, Ver-
rine entered into details relating to the punishments of the other
world, and Beelzebub was less unruly, though he tossed his victim,
Sister Magdalen, from one side of the church to the other, saying
that was the way they tossed about the souls of sinners in the
regions below. During all these strange proceedings, the church
was crowded with pilgrims, who went away " much edified."
It was decided on the 12th of December that in future, while
one priest exorcised and questioned the demons, another should
commit their answers to writing. These depositions were col-
lected and printed seriously by the exerciser Sebastian Michae-
lis, whose book made a great sensatioi\, and went through several
The priests who conducted this affair seem almost to have lost
sight of Louis Gaufridi, in their anxiety to collect these important
evidences of the true faith. It was not till toward the close of
Avinter that the reputed wizard was again thought of. A warrant
"was then obtained against him, and he was taken into custody,
and confined in the prison of the Conciergerie at Marseilles. On
the 5th of March he was for the first time confronted with Sister
Magdalen, but without producing the result anticipated by his
persecutors. Little information is given as to the subsequent
proceedings against him, but he appears to have been treated
with great severity, and to have persevered in asserting his in-
nocence. Sister Magdalen, or rather the demon within her,
gave information of certain marks on his body which had been
placed there by the evil one, and on search they were found ex-
actly as described. It is not to be wondered at, if, after the in-
tercourse which had existed between them. Sister Magdalen
were able to give such information. Still Gaufridi continued un-
shaken, and he made no confession, until at length, on Easter
eve, the 26th of March, 1611, a full avowal of his guilt was
drawn from him, we are not told through what means, by two
capuchins of the convent of Aix, to which place he had been
transferred for his trial. At the beginning of April, another wit-
ness, the demoiselle Victoire de Courbier, came forward to de-
pose that she had been bewitched by the renegade priest, who
had obtained her love by his charms, and he made no objection
to their adding this new incident to his confession.
Gaufridi acknowledged the truth of all that had been said by
Sister Magdalen or by her demon. He said that an uncle, who
had died many years ago, had left him his books, and that one
day, about five or six years before his arrest on this accusation,
he was looking them over, when he found among them a volume
of magic, in which were some writings in French verse, accom-
panied with strange characters. His curiosity was excited, and
he began to read it, when to his great astonishment and conster-
nation, the demon appeared in a human form, and said to him,
" What do you desire of me, for it is you who have called me ?"
Gaufridi was young, and easily tempted, and when he had re-
covered from his surprise, and was reassured by the manner
22
25i SORCERY AND MAGIC.
of mercy ;
judgment was given against him on the last day of
April, and. the same day it was put in execution. He was burnt
alive.
All true catholics had derived so much edification from the
declarations of the demons of Aix, that cases of possession be-
came more frequent, especially among the nuns. Among the
more remarkable cases, we may merely cite those of the nuns
of Louviers, in 1643, and of the rmns of Aussonne, in 1662. I
will, however, content myself with one more narrative of this
class, which is perhaps the most extraordinary of them all. We
are left to guess at the reasons for the persecution of Louis Gau-
fridi, but our next chapter will detail a history of which the mo-
tives were more apparent.
CHAPTER XXH.
THE URSULINES OF LOUDUN.
25th, the ciA'il officers, who were present, insisted on trying the
pretended powers of the demons to speak all languages, and the
bailli asked the patient what was the Hebrew word signifying
water. She held down her head and muttered something,
which one of the witnesses who stood A'ery near her declared
was a mere refusal in French to answer. But one of the priests,
who was suggesting to her, insisted that she said zaquaq, which
he declared meant in Hebrew aquam ejfudi ! On a previous
occasion they had risked an exposure by making the demon
speak bad Latin.* They now, therefore, began to be more cau-
tious, and carried on their examination of the demons in a more
secret manner. At the same time they tried to gain the bailli
over, but in vain. The confessions of the demons still turned
mainly upon the delinquencies of Grandier, but they began also
to talk against the Huguenots, provoked no doubt by the incre-
dulity of the civil magistrates. As the latter had exposed some
of their tricks, and had given them considerable embarrassment,
the nuns were now made to say in their fits that they would no
longer give any answers in the presence of the baiiji or other
municipal officers.
The priests now made their appeal to the bishop of Poitiers,
who at last openly espoused their cause, and on the 28th of No-
vember he appointed two commissioners, the deans of the canons
of Champigni, and of the canons of Thouars, to examine into this
strange affair. With their countenance and assistance the exor-
cisms commenced anew, and when, on the 1st of December, the
bailli went to the convent, and insisted upon being admitted to the
-examination, and upon being permitted to put questions to the nuns
when exorcised, he was refused by Barre, who now acted as chief
exorcist. The bailli then formally forbade him to put any questions
to the pretended demons tending to defame individuals but Barre ;
merely replied that it was his intention to use his own discretion
in this respect. The priests had now everything at their own will,
and they were sanguine of success, when their plot was deranged
by the unexpected announcement that the archbishop of Bordeaux
was on his way to Loudun. On several occasions the priests
had declared, to explain some temporary intermission of the fits,
that they had succeeded in driving away the demons, but that
they had subsequently been sent back by the magician. When
news came of the approach of the archbishop, they disappeared
entirely, and the nuns became quiet and tranquil. Some pru-
* In allusion to their bad Latin, and to the classes in the schools, a wit of the
daysaid, " Que les diable de Loudun n'avoient etudie quejusqu'en troisime."
262 SORCEUY AND MAGIC.
The Ursulines were now the sufferers. They fell into gene-
ral discredit; people took away their daughters,* and they fell
into distress. They laid the blame of their sufferings on their
director Mignon, who had led them into the expectation of de-
riving great profit from their imposture.
Before the embers of this flame were quite extinct, an unex-,
pected circumstance rekindled them. Among the pamphlets
Avhich had appeared against Cardinal Richelieu, who then ruled
the destinies of France, was a very bitter satire, entitled, in allu-
sion to some low intrigue of the cardinals connected with this
town, La Cordonniere de Loudun. M. de Laubardemont, a crea-
ture of the cardinal, who at this time held the office of master of
the requests, was sent to Loudun, in 1633, to direct the demoli-
tion of the castle of that place. Mignon and his fellow-plotters
immediately obtained an introduction to this minister, and they
not only recounted to him the affair of the nuns, in a manner very
disadvantageous to Urbain Grandier and his friends, but they
persuaded him that Urbain was the author of the satire just men-
tioned. Laubardemont returned to Paris, and communicated
what he had heard to the cardinal, who seldom spared the au-
thors of personal attacks on himself when they were in his pow-
er, and who is said to have been urged on to sacrifice the cure
of Loudun by his confidential adviser, the celebrated pere Joseph.
The result was, that Laubardemont returned to Loudun, commis-
sioned by the king to inquire into the possession of the nuns,
and into the charges against Grandier. He arrived at Ijoudun
with this commission on the 6th of December, 1633.
The case nojv assumed a much more serious countenance.
The demons returned to the sisters with redoubled fury, and
with an increase of numbers, and nearly all the nuns were at-
tacked by them. Mignon and his fellovz-priest had already got
up an exhibition of exorcism for Laubardemont before that func-
tionary's departure for Paris, and he brought back with him a
writ for the apprehension of Grandier, in which were blazoned
forth all the crimes which had ever been imputed, rightly or
wrongly, to that individual. Upon this he was thrown into pris-
on, and his house searched for magical books, which were not
* Tallemant des R6aux, wlio has preserved so many anecdotes of this period,
tellsus that Le Couldrny Montpensier, wlio had two daughters boarding with these
nuns, immediately took them away, and had them well whipped, which he found
an efficacious method of driving out the demons.
PERSECUTION OF URBAIN GRANDIER 263
slips like tliese, and they were especially active in their exami-
nations at the beginning of the month of JVtay. Some new de-
mons then appeared on the scene, vmder the names of Eazas,
Cerberus, Beherit, &c. Other statements of the demons were
found to be false, and the conspirators had much difficulty in con-
cealing some of the tricks they employed. But all these diffi-
culties were passed OA'er as matters of little moment.
The examinations were now exhibited publicly in the church,
and a crowd of people, both catholics and Huguenots, were al-
ways present. The matter had already created so much sensa-
tion throughout France, that many people of quality came from
Paris and other parts, so that all the hostelries in the town were
filled with visiters. Among the rest was Quillet, the court poet,
who fell into temporary disgrace by his imprudence on this occa-
sion. At one of the exhibitions, Satan, speaking from the mouth
of one of the sisters, threatened that he would toss up to the ceil-
ing of the church any one who should dare to deny the posses-
sion of the nuns. Quillet took him on his word, and was not
tossed to the ceiling, but he provoked so much the anger of Lau-
bardemont, that he is said to have found it advisable to make a
journey to Rome. On another occasion the devil boasted that
he would take the protestant minister of Loudun in his pulpit
and carry him up to the top of the church-steeple, but he did not
put his threat in execution. This same protestant minister was
present at one of the examinations, when the priests, who were
administering the consecrated host, told him contemptuously, to
show their superiority over the Huguenots, that he dared not put
his fingers into the mouths of the nuns as they did. He is said
to have replied, that " he had no familiarity with the devil, and
would not presume to play with him." The priests made the
nuns utter a great mass of nonsense, and much that was profane
and indecent. They caused them to say many things irreverent
even to those who conducted the prosecution, which was con-
sidered as proving how little they were influenced by them. One
day the devil, by the mouth of one of the sisters, closed the ex-
amination by declaring, " M. de Laubardemont est cocuP In the
evening, as usual, Laubardemont took the written report, wrote
under these words as a matter of course, " Ce que fatteste etre
vrai" and signed it with his name. When the depositions Were
sent to Paris, this circumstance was the source of no little amuse-
ment at court.
As the trial went on, doubts and ridicule began to be thrown
upon it, which alarmed the commissioners, and it was resolved
CONDEMNATION OF GRANDIER. 265
again, and not only gave the prosecution the full advantage of his
ecclesiastical authority, but he caused placards to be exhibited
about the town forbidding any one to speak disrespectfully of the
nuns. This at once shut the mouths of all Grandier's friends.
His enemies had, however, another embarrassing circumstance
to contend with. Some of the actors appear to have become
ashamed of their parts, and to have been surprised with scruples
of conscience. At the beginning of July, Sister Clara declared
before the multitude assembled in the church, that all her confes-
sions for some months past had been mere falsehood and impos-
ture, which had been put into her mouth by Mignon and the
priests, and she rushed from the church and endeavored to make
her escape but she was seized and brought back.
; This, how-
ever, did not hinder another nun. Sister Agnes, from following
her example, and she made a similar declaration. The commis-
sioner immediately adopted measures for hindering the recur-
rence of such accidents, and the priests declared that it was only
one of the demon's vagaries, and that the unruly patients were
at that moment under his influence. They carried their meas-
ures of intimidation so far, that they accused not only a sister of
Grandier, but the wife of the bailli of Loudun, of being witches,
intending thus at one blow to strike fear into his friends and re-
lations. And they declared openly that the attempt to throw dis-
credit on the proceedings was a mere trick of the Huguenots,
who were afraid that the miracles performed by the priests on.
this occasion would throw discredit upon them.
Thus, overruling every form of law and justice, did the cure^s
enemies hurry on their object. As soon as it was known that
the all-powerful cardinal was resolved on the destruction of the
victim, few were bold enough to stand up in his defence. On
the 18th of August, 1634, the judges assembled in the convent
of the Carmelites, and on the faith of evidence testified by Asta-
roth, the chief of the devils, and a host of other demons, they
pronounced judgment on Urbain Grandier, convicted of magic
and sorcery, to the effect that he should perform penance before
23
266 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
CHAPTER XXIII.
tures are strange scrawls, evidently written by trembling hands guided by others.
THE LANCASHIRE WITCHES, 267
give her soul to the said spirit. And for the space of five or six
years next after, the said spirit or devil appeared at sundry times
unto her about daylight-gate [twilight], always bidding her stay,
and asking her what she would have or do. To whom she re-
plied, nay, nothing ; for she said she w^anted nothing yet. And
so about the end of the said six years, upon a sabbath-day, in the
morning, this examinate, having a little child upon her knee, and
she being in a slumber, the said spirit appeared unto her in the
likeness of a brown dog, forcing himself to her knee, to get blood
under her left arm and she being without any apparel saving
;
her smock, the said devil did get blood under her left arm. And
she awaking, said, Jesus, save my child !' but had no power, nor
'
could not say, Jesus save herself! whereupon the brown dog van-
ished out of her sight after which she was almost stark mad for
;
swered, that his soul was not his to give, but was his Savior
Jesus Christ's but as much as was in him this examinate to
;
three daysafter, this examinate went to the Carre Hall, and upon
some speeches betwixt Mistress Towneley and this examinate,
she charging this examinate and his said mother to have stolen
some turves of her, bad him pack the doores and withall as he
;
went forth of the door, the said Mistress Towneley gave him a
knock between the shoulders. And about a day or two after
that, thereappeared unto this examinate in his way a thing like
unto a black dog, who put this examinate in mind of the said
Mistress Towneley's falling out with him, and bad him make a
picture of clay like unto the said Mistress Towneley and he ;
dried it the same night by the fire, and within a day after, he,
this examinate, began to crumble the said picture, every day
some, for the space of a week and within two days after all
;
suck at some part of her, and she might have and do what she
would. And she further saith, that one John Nutter, of the Bul-
hole in Pendle aforesaid, had a cow which was sick, and re-
quested this examinate's grandmother to amend the said cow and ;
her said grandmother said she would, and so her said grand-
ttiother about ten of the clocke in the night, desired this exami-
nate to lead her forth, which this examinate did, she being then
blind and her grandmother did remain about half an hour furlh
; ;
and this examinate's sister did fetch her in again but what she
;
did when she was so forth, this examinate can not tell. But the
next morning this examinate heard that the said cow was dead.
23*
270 SORCERY AND TRAGIC.
and about four or five days then next after her said grandmother
did request this examinate to lead her forth about ten of the clocke
in the night, which this examinate accordingly did, and she
stayed forth then about an houre, and this examinate's sister
fetched her in again. And this examinate heard the next morn-
ing that a woman-child of the said Richard Baldwin was fallen
sick and as this examinate did then hear, the said child did lan-
;
of the said house unto him ; whereupon the said wicked spirit
moved this examinate that she would become his subject and
THE IMAGES OF CLAY, 271
gh^e her soul unto him. The which at first she refused to assent
unto but, after, by the great persuasions made by the said Dem-
;
nied then to grant unto him and withall asked him, what part of
;
her body he would have for th»t use who said, he M'ould have a
;
place of her right side, near to her ribs, for him to suck upon ;
whereunto she assented. And she further said, that at the same
time there was a thing in the likeness of a spotted bitch, that
came with the said spirit unto the said Demdike, which then did
speak unto her in this examinate's hearing, and said, that she
should have gold, silver, and worldly wealth, at her will and at
;
the same time she saith there was victuals, viz., flesh, butter,
cheese, bread, and drink, and bid them eat enough. And after
their eating, the devil called Fancy, and the other spirit calling
himself Tibb, carried the remnant away. And she saith, that
although they did eat, they were never the fuller nor better for
the same ; and that at their said banquet the said spirits gave
them light to see what they did, although they neither had fire
nor candlelight and that they were both she spirits and devils."
;
Chattox-, was making; and the said Anne Redferne, her said
daughter, wrought her clay or marie to make the third picture
withall. And this examinate passing by them, the said spirit,
called Tibb, in the shape of a black cat, appeared unto her this ex-
aminate, and said, Turn back again, and do as they do.'
'
To
whom this examinate said, What are they doing?' Whereunto
'
the said spirit said, 'They are making three pictures.' Where-
upon she asked whose pictures they were. Whereunto the said
spirit said, They are the pictures of Christopher Nutter, Robert
'
272 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
Nutter, and Mary, wife of the said Robert Nutter.' But this ex-
aminate denying to help them to make the pictures
go back to
aforesaid, the said spirit, seeming to be angry therefore, shove
or pushed this examinate into the ditch, and so shed the milk
which this examinate had in a can or kit, and so thereupon the
spirit at that time vanished out of this examinate's sight. But
presently after that, the said spirit appeared to this examinate
again in the shape of a hare, and so went with her about a quar-
ter of a mile, but said nothing to this examinate, nor she to it."
The two factions under these two rivals in mischief the Er- —
ictho and Canidia, as they have been aptly termed, of the forest
of Pendle —were the terror of the neighborhood. Those who
were not witches themselves, were glad to buy on any terms the
favor of Mother Demdike and her familar Tibb, or that of Mother
Chattox and her imp Fancy and those who offended the two
;
the highway called Colne-field, near unto Colne and this ex-
;
but the said pedlar sturdily answered that he would not loose
his pack and so this examinate parting with him, presently
;
this examinate answered, and said to the black dog, Lame '
FEUDS AMONG THE WITCHES. 273
him ;"and before the pedlar was gone forty rods further, he fell
down lame and this examinate then went after the said pedlar
;
whose persuasion they all consented unto it. After which time,
this examinate's son-in-law Thomas Redferne did persuade this
examinate not to kill or hurt the said Robert Nutter; for which
persuasion the said Loomeshaw's v>'ife had like to have killed
the said Redferne, but that one Mr. Baldwyn (the late school-
master at Coin) did by his learning stay the said Loomeshaw's
wife, and therefor had a capon from Redferne."
Baldwyn, the schoolmaster, was probably a " white wizard."
Robert Nutter was thus saved from death, but his fate was
only deferred, for not long after, as Mother Chattox further in-
forms us, Robert Nutter who was probably ignorant of the plot
from which he had already escaped, " did desire her daughter,
Redferne's wife, to have his will of her, being then in Redferne's
house but the said Redferne's wife denied the said Robert.
;
venge her of the said Robert Nutter." The result was the
death not only of Robert Nutter, but of his father, Christopher
Nutter, the particulars of which were told at the trial by young
Robert's brother John and his sister Margaret.
Elizabeth Nutter had now fully obtained her desire, and the
Redfernes were allowed to remain in their house. Some years
after, however, we still find hostility existing between the Red-
fernes and the Nutters of Pendle. Anthony Nutter had now,
perhaps, inherited Elizabeth Nutter's property, and lived in the
THE WITCHES ARRESTED. 275
lioiise atPendle with his daughtei- Anne. One day they offend-
ed Mother Chattox, when she came to their house, and next day
Anne Nutter fell sick, and, after languishing three weeks, died.
James Device, on his examination at the trial, told a strange
story connected with this event. He, said, that " twelve years
ago, Anne Chattox, at a burial at the new church in Pendle, did
take three scalps of people which had been buried and then cast
out of a grave, as she the said Chattox told this examinate and ;
took eight teeth out of the said scalps, whereof she kept four to
herself, and gave other four to the said Demdike, this exami-
nate's grandmother ; which four teeth now shown to this exam-
inate are the four teeth that the said Chattox gave to his said
grandmother as aforesaid which said teeth have ever since been
;
* Potts was tbe author of" The "V\''oQderful Discoverie of Witches in the Coun-
tie of Lancaster" (4to, London, 1613), a book of some rarity, of which a reprint,
with a considerable naass of valuable information, was edited,, in 1845, for the
Chatham Society, by James Crossley, Esq., of Manchester. The present account
of the Lancashire witclies is compiled entirely from the materials preserved by
Potts, which are' the authentic copies of the confessions of the olFeuders and the
depositions of witnesses. The common chap-hook tract, entitled '' The Lancashire
Witches." which has been inserted by Mr. Halliwell in his " Palatine Anthology,"
was a mere catch-penny invention.
The reader will remember the admirably conceived character of Master Thomas
Potts, in Aiusworth's romance.
276 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
ton's wife promised to make them a* great feast. And if they had
occasion to meet in the meantime, there should warning be giv-
en, that they all should meet upon Romleyes Moor."
Several of the persons at this meeting were related in some
way or other to the Devices or to their rivals, and they appear to
have been generally of a very equivocal character in other re-
spects. One person now implicated, in this affair, Alice Nutter,
of Rough Lee, alone excites much sympathy. She was a woman
of considerable property, and held a respectable position among
the better families in the county. Rough Lee, her residence, is
still standing, and is a good specimen of the gentleman's house
of that period. Jennet Device, the little girl, was evidently sub-
orned to swear away the lives of her relatives, and there appeared
good reason for believing that she introduced Alice Nutter into
the plot at the desire of some of that lady's relatives, who were
eager to obtain her property, which would come to them by her-
itage on her death. It has been further handed down by tradi-
tion that Justice Nowell owed the lady a grudge on account of a
24
278 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
and talking, but no man knew what ;" and she was " always more
ready to do mischief to men's goods than themselves ;" in this
respect the contrary of Demdike, who took delight in killing and
tormenting the persons of her enemies. She was, nevertheless,
notorious as " a dangerous vv^itch," and was " always opposite to
Old Demdike, for whom the one favored, the other hated dead-
ly." Between them, no doubt, the forest of Pendle must have
been an agreeable neighborhood. Yet Mother Chattox had some
feelings of affection, for when judgment was pronounced upon
her, she cried out in a distracted manner that God would be mer-
ciful to her, and falling on her knees, supplicated the judge that
he would " be merciful unto Anne Redferne, her daughter."
Demdike's daughter, Elizabeth Device, was next brought to the
bar. " This odious witch was branded with a preposterous mark
in nature, even from her birth, which was her left eye standing
lower than the other the one looking down, the other looking
;
up, so strangely deformed that the best that were present in that
honorable assembly and great audience did affirm that they had
not often seen the like." When this woman saw her own child
stand up in evidence against her, she burst into a violent passion,
" according to her accustomed manner, outrageously cursing,
'
cried out against the child in such a fearful manner, as all the
court did not a little wonder at her, and so amazed the child, as
with weeping tears she cried out to my lord the judge, and told
him she was not able to speak in the presence of her mother."
In the end they were obliged to take Elizabeth Device away, and
then the daughter gave her evidence unconcerned. The other
prisoners were then brought to their trial in succession. Four,
EXECUTION OF THE WITCHES. 279
One other of the witches who met at the fatal assembly in Mal-
kin tower was brought to the scalibld at the same time. This
was Jennet Preston, of Gisborne, in Craven, who was tried at
York for bewitching some members of the family of Lister, in
Craven, and for other similar oflences but the principal evidence
;
the dogs would not run. " Whereupon, being very angry, he
took them, and with the strings that were at their collars, tied
either of them to a little bush at the next hedge, and with a rod
that he had in his hand he beat them and instead of the black
;
put her hand into her pocket again, and pulled out a siring like
YOUNG ROBINSON'S ADVENTURES. 281
unto a bridle that jingled, which she put upon the little boy's
head that stood up in the brown greyhound's stead, whereupon
the said boy stood up a white horse." The woman now seized
upon Edmund Robinson, placed him on the horse before her, and
rode with him to Hoar-stones, where " there were divers persons
about the door, and he saw divers others coming riding upon
horses of several colors toward the house, which tied their hor-
res to a hedge near to the said house and which persons went
;
afraid, and ran away from him to seek the kyne. And in the
way he saw a light like a lantern, toward which he made haste,
supposing it to be carried by some of Mr. Robinson's people [one
of their more wealthy neighbors] but when he came to the
;
thou see and hear such strange things of the meeting of witches
as is reported by many that thou dost relate, or did not some per-
son teach thee lo say such things of thyself V But the two men
THE YOUNG WITCH-FINDER. 283
not giving the boy leave to answer, did pluck him from me, and
said he had been examined by two able justices of the peace,
and they did never ask him such a question to whom I replied,
;
greate and grand devill then the rest, and yf anie witch desired to
have such an one, they might have such an one to kill or hurt
anie body. And shee further saith, that such witches as have
sharpe boanes are generally for the devill to prick them with
which have no papps nor duggs, but raiseth blood from the place
pricked with the boane, which witches are more greate and grand
witches than they which have papps or dugs. And shee beeing
further asked what persons were at their last meetinge, she named
one Carpnall and his wife, Rason and his wife, Pickhamer and
his wife, Duffy and his wife, and one Jane Carbonell, whereof
Pickhamer's wife is the most greate,- grand, and auncyent witch ;
and that one witch alone can kill a beast, and yf they bidd their
spirit or devill to goo and pricke or hurt anie man in anie partic-
uler place, hee presently will doe it. And that their spiritts have
usually knowledge of their bodies. And shee further saith the
men witches have woemen spiritts, and woemen witches have
men spiritts and that Good Friday is one of their constant dales
;
of their generall meetings, and that on Good Friday last they had
a meetinge neere Pendle water side ; and saith that their spirit
doelh tell them where their meetings must bee, and in what
place and saith that if a witch desire to bee in anie place upon
;
CHAPTER XXIV.
that her master, when he gave it unto her, willed her to open
her mouth, and he would blow into her a fairy which should do
her good and that she opened her mouth, and he did blow into
;
her mouth and that presently after his blowing there came out
;
of her mouth a spirit, which stood upon the ground, in the shape
and form of a woman, which spirit asked of her her soul, which
she then promised unto it, being willed thereunto by her master.
She further confessed, that she never hurt anybody, but did help
divers that sent for her, which were stricken or forespoken ;
and that her spirit came weekly to her, and would tell her of
" The earl and the countess were so far satisfied that their children died by
witchcraft, that it was stated in the inscription on their monument in Bottesford
church.
268 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
they presently came to her and she departing left them with
;
the examinate, and they leaped on her shoulder ;and the kitten
sucked under her right ear or her neck, and the moldiwarp on
the left side in the like place. After they had sucked her, she
sent the kitten to a baker of that town, whose name she remem-
bers not, who had called her witch and struck her and bade her
;
the said Willimott and the wife of John Patchet of the said Sta-
thorne, yeoman, she, the said Willimott, called her, this exami-
nate, to go and touch the said John Patchet's wife and her child,
which she did, touching the said John Patchet's wife in her
bed, and the child in the grace-wife's arms, and then sent her
said spirits to bewitch them to death, which they did, and so
the woman lay languishing by the space of a month and more,
for then she died : the child died the next day after she touched
it. And she further saith, that the said Joan Willimott had a
spirit sucking on her under the left flank in the likeness of a
little white dog, which this examinate saith that she saw the
THE WITCEES OF BELVOIR. 289
she brought down a glove, and delivered the same to her mother,
Avho stroked Rutterkin, her cat, with it ; after it was dipped in
hot water, and so pricked it often, after Avhich Henry Lord
Rosse fell sick within a week, and v/as much torm.ented with
the same. She further saith, that finding a glove about two or
three years since of Francis Lord Rosse on a dunghill, she de-
livered it to her mother, who put it into hot water ;and after
took it out and rubbed it on Rutterkin the cat, and bade him go
upward and after her mother buried it in the yard, and said a
;
mischief light on him, but he v,'ill not mend again. She further
said, that her mother and she, and her sister, agreed together to
bewitch the earl and his lady, that they might have no more
children ; and being demanded the cause of this their malice
and ill-will, she saith, that about four years since the countess
(growing into some mislike with her) gave her forty shillings,
a bolster, and a mattress, and bade her bide at home and come
no more to dwell at the castle Avhich she not only took in ill
;
she took wool out of the said mattress, and a pair of gloves,
which were given her by Mr. Vavasor, and put them into warm
water, mingling them with some blood, and stirring it together ;
then she took the wool and gloves out of the water, and rubbed
them on the body of Rutterkin her cat, saying the lord and the
lady should have more children, but it should be long first. She
further confessed, that bj'' her mother's commandment, she
brought to her a piece of a handkerchief of the lady Katherine,
the earl's daughter; and her mother put it into hot water, and
then taking it out rubbed it on Rutterkin, bidding him fly and go,
whereupon Rutterkin whined and cried Mew ;' whereupon she
'
25
290 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
an ape, and spake unto her, but what she can not well remem-
ber, at which she was very angry, because he would speak no
plainer, or let her understand his meaning : the other three were
Rutterkin, little Robin, and Spirit, but she never mistrusted them,
nor suspected herself till then."
The Roman catholics in England were very active during the
reign of James I., and they attempted to take advantage of the
popular credulity in getting up cases of possession in imitation
of their brethren on the continent ; one of the most remarkable
cases of this kind occurred in Lancaster in 1612, and led to a
trial on the same day with that of the witches of Pendle.
The village of Samlesbury is at some distance from the Pen-
die district, nearer to Preston, but it was probably the reports of
the deeds of Mothers Demdike and Chattox that suggested the
plot now to be related. The principal family in this township
were the Southworths, who had their head seat at Samlesbury
park, and who seem to have been much divided among themselves
— a division which was increased by religious difterences, for
some of them were protestants and others catholics. Lancashire
was at this time remarkable for the number of papists which it
—
harbored it was the grand asylum of the English seminary
priests, and there are documents which show that Samlesbury
park was a well-known resort of the partisans of Rome. One
of these priests was Christopher Southworth, who for conceal-
ment had assumed the name of Thom.pson, and who appears to
have been nearly related to Sir John Southworth, the occupier
of the park, who was then recently dead. Between Sir John
and one of his female relations, Jane Southworth, there was a
bitter feud, for what reason is not stated ; a servant of Sir
John's, named John Singleton, deposed, that " he had often
heard his old master say, that the said Jane Southworth was, as
he thought, an evil woman and a witch ;" and he added, " that
the said Sir John Southworth, in his coming or going between
his own house at Samlesbury and the town of Preston, did for
the most part forbear to pass by the house where the said wife
dwelt, though it was his nearest and best way, and rode another
way, only for fear of the said wife, as this examinate verily
thinketh." This statement was confirmed by another witness,
THE WITCHES OF SAMLESBUEY. 291
nate thought there came o.ne to her in a white sheet, and carried
her away from the said pit, upon the coming whereof the said
black dog departed away." The dog subsequently returned, and
carried her to a neighbor's barn, where it left her in a trance on
the floor. She went on to describe other instances of persecu-
tion by the witches, and declared that on one occasion her grand-
mother and aunt had taken her by night to the house of a man
named Thomas Walshman, which they entered " she knew not
how," and Jennel Bierley caused the death of an infant child
and the night after the burial of the child, " the said Jennet Bier-
ley, and Ellen Bierley, taking this examinate Avith them, went
to Samlesbury church, and there did take up the said child, and
the said Jennet did carry it out of the churchyard in her arms,
and then did put it in her lap and carried it home to her own
house, and having it there, did boil some thereof in a pot, and
some did broil on the coals, of both which the said Jennet and
Ellen did eat, and would have had this examinate, and one Grace
Bierley, daughter of the said Ellen, to have eaten with them,
but they refused so to do. And afterward the said Jennet and El-
len did seethe (boil) the bones of the said child in a pot, and with
the fat that came out of the said bones they said they would
anoint themselves, that thereby they might sometimes change
themselves into other shapes. And after all this being done,
they said they would lay the bones again in the grave the next
night following, but whether they did so or not this examinate
knoweth not neither doth she know how they got it out of the
;
grave at the first taking of it up." She next staled, that " about
half a year ago, the said Jennet Bierley, Ellen Bierley, Jane
Southworth, and this examinate (who went by the appointment
of the said Jennet, her grandmother), did meet at a place called
Redbank, upon the north side of the water of Ribble, every
Thursday and Sunday at night, by the space of a fortnight, and at
the water-side there came unto them, as they went thither, four
black things, going upright, and yet not like men in the face,
which four did carry the said three women and this examinate
over the water and when they came to the said Redbank, they
;
taken from the foreign books on the subject, and then described
other persecutions to which she had been subjected, until the
time of the arrest of the prisoners.
It was not the fashion at this time to submit witnesses in such
cases to a strict cross-examination, nor did any one think of op-
ening the grave of the child to ascertain in what condition the
body might then be but Thomas Walshman deposed that his
;
child died about the time stated, though he said that it had been
sick for som.e time. Witnesses were also examined as to Grace
Sowerbuts' fits, and the father and one or two other witnesses
gave their evidence in corroboration of her statements. The
evidence was thus in due order taken, and the jury was no
doubt ready to give a verdict against the prisoners, when the
judge, Sir Edward Bromley, demanded of the latter what they
had to say for themselves. The sequel may be told best in the
rather dramatic language of the report of the trial. The three
prisoners, instead of being abashed as persons under such cir-
cumstances usually v^ere, " hiunbly upon their knees, wdth weep-
ing tears, desired him for God's cause to examine Grace Sower-
buts, who set her on, or by whose means this accusation came
against them. Immediately the countenance of this Grace Sow-
erbuts changed ; the Avitnesses, being behind, began to quarrel
and accuse one another. In the -end his lordship examined the
girl, who could not for her life make any direct answer, but
strangely amazed, told him she was put to a master to learn, but
he told her nothing of this. But here, as his lordship's care and
pains were great to discover the practices of these odious witches
of the forest of Pendle and other places now upon their trial be-
fore him, so was he desirous to discover this damnable practice
to accuse these poor women and bring their lives in danger, and
thereby to deliver the innocent. And as he openly delivered it
upon the bench, in the hearing of this great audience, that if a
priest or Jesuit had a hand in one end of it, there would appear
to be knavery and practice in the other end of it, and that it might
the better appear to the whole world, examined Thomas Sower-
buts what master taught his daughter in general terms he
;
denied all. The wench had nothing to say, but her master told
her nothing of that. In the end, some that were present told his
lordship the truth, and the prisoners informed him how she went
to learn with one Thompson, a seminary priest, who had in-
structed and taught her this accusation against them, because
they were once obstinate papists, and now came to church.
Here is the discovery of this priest, and of his whole practice.
25*
294 SORCERY AND MAGIC
Still this fire increased more and more, and, one witness accu-
sing another, all things were laid open at large. In the end,
his lordship took away the girl from her father, and committed
her to Mr. Leigh, a very religious preacher, and Mr. Chisnal,
two justices of the peace, to be carefully examined."
Grace Sowerbuts now made a full confession she declared
;
that all she said before had been taught her by the priest ;that
it was a mere invention ; that her fits were counterfeit: and that
she had, by her own will, gone into the barn and other places
where she was found.
Eight years after this trial, in 1620, occurred a somewhat sim-
ilar case, Avhich made a great sensation at the time. There was
at Bilston, in Staffordshire, a poor boy twelve years old, named
William Percy, the son of a husbandman of that place. One
day as he was coming home from school, he met an old woman
whom he had never seen before, but who, as it was afterward
pretended, was a poor woman of the neighborhood, named Joan
Cock she taxed him that he did not wish her good day, and told
;
him that he Avas a foul thing, and that it had been better for him if
he had saluted her. This was the account which the lad gave, and
he had no sooner reached home than he was seized with dreadful
fits. It appears that there were many Roman catholics residing in
the neighborhood of Bilston, and to some of these the boy's pa-
rents applied for advice and assistance. As soon as the boy was
exorcised according to the forms directed by the Romish church,
he became calm, and in reply to questions put to him, he declared
that he was bewitched, and that he was possessed by three devils.
Besides the exorcisms, the priests were very liberal with holy
water and with holy oil, by the plentiful application of which,
" with extreme fits and hearings, he brought up pins, wool,
knotted thread, thrums, rosemary, walnut-leaves, feathers, &c."
This we learn from the priest, who drew up the account of the
" miracle," which was afterward printed, and who informs us,
among other things, that "on Thursday, being Corpus Christi
day, I came again, and found the child in great extremities. In
this time he had brought up eleven pins, and a knitting-needle,
folded up in divers folds, &c. He said the spirit bad him not to
hearken to me in any case that the witch said she would make
;
an end of him, &c. I wished him to pray for the witch, which
he did then the child did declare that now he was perfectly
;
himself, and desired that his books, pens, ink, deaths, might be
blessed, wishing his parents, sisters, and brothers, to bless them-
selves, and become catholics out of which faith, by God's grace,
;
THE BOY OF BILSTON. 295
thus made which, left no further doubt on the matter, and when
the boy found himself detected, he changed countenance and
confessed. The story he told was, that an old man called Thom-
as, with gray hair and " a cradle of glasse," met him not far from
his father's house, and, entering into conversation with him, sug-
gested this imposture as a means of staying from school. He
then taught him to roll about, groan, cast up his eyes, &c., and
told him to accuse somebody who was reputed a witch. Some
papists, he said, recommended him to seek help of the catholic
priests. When the bishop asked him if he did not design to
yield to their exorcisms, he replied that he did, but that. he had
continued the imposture so long, because much people resorted
to him, and brought him good things, and because he was not
willing to go to school again. It is not impossible that the
story of the old man had been suggested by the priests them-
selves, in order to conceal their own complicity in case of a dis-
covery of the fraud.
The dangerous doctrine, v/hich had long before been acted up-
on in the case of the witches of Warboys, was now widely pro-
mulgated, that the declaration of the person bewitched, while in
the fits caused by witchcraft, was sufficient evidence against the
supposed offender. This was opening a door for the indulgence
of personal enmity which could not fail to be often taken advan-
tage of, and such cases appear to have been of very frequent
occurrence. In Lord Londesborough's volume of manuscripts
already alluded to, there are the notes of two very curious affairs
of this kind. The first of these cases occurred in and near Lon-
don, in the year 1622. The lady Jennings, living at Thistle-
worth, had a daughter named Elizabeth, of the age of thirteen
years. One day she was " frighted with the sight of an old
woman who suddainly appeared to her att the dore and demaund-
—
ed a pin of her" this seems to have been the usual article which
the witches asked of those they were going to torment — and from
that time the child suitered from convulsive fits of the most pain-
ful description. A variety of remedies were tried in vain, and
in the course of this treatment a woman named Margaret Rus-
sel, who went by the name of Countess, frequently attended
she appears to have been v/ell known at the house, and to have
interfered with the medical arrangements. On the 25th of April,
at the end of one of her fits, Elizabeth Jennings utteted the
names of this woman and three others, and then went on talking
incoherently, " These have bewitched all my mother's children
— —
east, west, north, and south, all these lie all these are witch-
COUNTESS ARRESTED. 297
there this examinate found her and a woman sitting with her, and
told her in what case the child was, and she said shee wold
come this day, but shee ought her noe service, and said she had
bin there before and left receiptes there, but the child did not
take them. And she said further, that there was two children
that the lady Jennins had by this husband that were bewitched
and dead, for there was controversie betweene two howses, and
that as long as they dwelt there they cold not prosper, and that
there shold be noe blessing in that house by this man. And be-
ing demaunded what she meant by the difference betwixt two
liowses, she answered it was betwixt the house of God and the
house of the w^rld but being xirged to expresse it better, she
;
Higgins the apothecarie, the next neighbour, and the lady Jen-
nins. And shee further confesseth that above a moneth agoe she
v/ent to Mrs. Saxey, in Gunpouder-alley, who was forespoken
herselfe, and that had a booke that cold helpe all those that were
forespoken, and that shee wold come and shewe her the booke
and helpe her under God. And further said to this examinate,
that none but a seminary preist cold cure her." We have here
another instance how busy the seminary priests, or Jesuits, were
in obtruding themselves in such cases.
Countess was now committed to Nev/gate, and next day new
revelations were obtained from the bewitched child confirmatory
of the former accusation. But meanwhile the minister's wife
298 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
for a moment. (I use good and bad for the two spiritual voices,
and man for the natural voice, as more simple than the mode of
expressing them in the manuscript.) The conversation began
as follows :
hull in Ireland.
" Good. But what are theire names ?
"Man. Come, come, prithee tell me, why did they bewitche
me 1
"Bad. Because ihow didst call Johane Greedie witche.
"Man. Why, shee not a witche ?
is
"Bad. Yes, but thou shouldest not have said soe.
" Good. But why did Bull bewitche him?
"Bad. Because Greedie was not stronge enough."
Inquiry is again made after Bull, and, on following the direc-
tion given by the spirit, the messenger finds the spot from which
he had just escaped, and meets with people who had seen him
running away. A conversation follows on the mischiefs which
the witches had perpetrated before they attacked this man, and
we learn that they had bewitched a person to death. The con-
versation is resumed in another fit six days after and another
attempt to catch Bull failed. The bad spirit now declares his
300 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
intention to have Dinliam's soul, but the good spirit opposes him,
and a violent struggle arises, and the evil one has the advantage.
The conversation between them is then resinned :
" Bad. I will have him, or else I will torment him eight tymes
more.
" Good. Thou shalt not have thy will in all thinges thou shalt
;
"Bad. God.
" Good. Wherefore was Christ Jesus his precious blood shed ?
" Bad. rie no more of that."
Upon this, the patient was seized with terrible convulsions.
A few days afterward, in another fit, the struggle to obtain pos-
session of the soul is renewed :
" Bad. If thou v/ilt give me thy soule, I will give thee gold
enough.
" Good. Thy gold will scald ray fingers.
" Bad. If thou wilt give me thy soule, I will give thee dice,
and thou shalt winne infinite somes of treasure by play.
" Good. If thou canst make every letter in this booke [ihe ?nan
had a prayer-book in his ha?id'\ a die, I vfill.
" Bad. That I cannott,
" Good. Laudes, laudes, laudes !
—
"Bad. Ladies, ladies, ladies thou shalt have ladies enough,
and if thou wilt they shall come to bedd to thee." [The bad
/Spirit evidently did not understand Latin !]
" Good. If thou canst make every letter in this booke a ladie,
I will."
The bad spirit now attempted to cast the book away, but after
a violent struggle he was overcome, and then the good spirit
made " the sweetest rausicke that ever was heard." After an-
other attempt to trace and catch Bull, by the spirit's directions he
Avas at last captured in his bed. Now
that the prisoners were
secured, Dinham was delivered from his persecutor, and was no
more tormented. The witches were indicted for similar offences,
but vfe are not told what was their fate, or whether any " semi-
nary priests" were here concerned.
COTTA ON WITCHCRAFT. 301
to support his opinions would, if followed out, have led him much
further than he v/ould venture then to go. Cotta requires that
the evidence against persons accused of witchcraft should be of
a direct and practical description. He recommended that in all
cases of supposed witchcraft or possession, skilful physicians
should be employed to ascertain if the patient might not be suf-
fering from a natural malady, and he pointed out the fallacy which
attended the doctrine of vvitches' marks. He showed how little
faith could generally be placed in the confessions of the witches,
from both the manner in which they were obtained, and the char-
acters of the individuals vi'ho made them. He exposed in the
same rational manner the uncertainty of such objectionable modes
of trying witches as swimming them in the waters, scratching,
beating, pinching, or drawing blood from them. He objected
also to taking the supernatural revelations in those v/ho were be-
witched as evidence against those v^ho v/ere accused of bewitch-
ing them. It will be seen that all the evidence at that time con-
sidered conclusive would thus have been rendered of no account.
But Cotta was in advance of his age he published his book in
:
CHAPTER XXV.
WITCHCRAFT UNDER THE COMMONWEALTH MATTHEW HOPKINS,
:
THE WITCH-FINDER.
the heroes of the Homeric age, the warfare in which they were
thrown engaged the spiritual no less than the carnal world. It
was natural, therefore, that they should look with especial hori'or
and hostility on that union of Satan and mankind which was em-
bodied in the witch or sorcerer. They were the more apparent
manifestations of the devil's own interference in the attempt to
bring back the double tyranny of kingship and popery. It is
impossible now to say how far the prosecutions of witches at this
period belonged to the personal animosities of religious and po-
litical party, but there can be little doubt that some at least of
those who suffered were martyrs to their loyalty. The first name
which ushers in the melancholy list during this period is that of
Dr. Lamb, who had been the favorite Buckingham's domestic
magician, and who was torn to pieces by the London mob in
1640.
The great outbreak of fanaticism and superstition which fol-
lowed began in the county of Essex. In the spring of 1645,
several witches were seized at Manningtree, and were subse-
quently condemned and hanged. One of these was an old wo-
ftian named Elizabeth Clarke, and the most important witness
against her was " Matthew Hopkins of Manningtree, gent." It
appears that Hopkins had watched with her several nights in a
room in the house of a Mr. Edwards, in which she was confined,
to keep her from sleeping until she made a confession, and to
see if she were visited by her familiars. He declared, among
other things, that on the night of the 24th of March, which ap-
pears to have been the third night of watching, after he had re-
fused to let her call one of her imps or familiars, she confessed
that about six or seven years before she had surrendered herself
MATTHEW HOPKINS AND JOHN STERNE. 303
to the devil, who came to her in the form of " a proper gentle-
man, with a laced band." Soon after this a little dog appeared,
fat and short in the legs, in color white with sandy spots, which,
when he hindered it from approaching her, vanished from his
sight. She confessed that it was one of her imps, named Jar-
mara. Immediately after this had disappeared, another came in
the form of a greyhound, which she called Vinegar Tom and
;
danced about the said greyhound, and by all likelihood bit a piece
of the flesh of the shoulder of the greyhound, for the greyhound
came shrieking and crying to this informant with a piece of flesh
torn from her shoulder. And this informant further saith, that,
coming into his own yard that night, he espied a black thing,
proportioned like a cat, only it was thrice as big, sitting on a
strawberry-bed, and fixing its eyes on this informant and when
;
he went toward it, it leaped over the pale toward this informant,
as he thought, but ran quite through the yard, with his greyhoimd
after it, to a great gate, which was underset with a pair of tum-
brill-strings, and did throw the said gate wide open, and then
vanished and the said greyhound returned again to this inform-
;
whom they were provoked were cast away. The names and
forms of their imps were equally fantastic. Rebecca Jones, a
witch brought from St. Osythe's, said that she had met a man in
a ragged suit, with great eyes that terrified her exceedingly, and
that he gave her three things like moles, but vv^ithout tails, which
she fed with milk. Another had an imp in the form of a white
dog, which she called Elimanzer, and which she fed with milk-
pottage. One had three imps, which she called Prick-ear, Jack,
and Frog another had four, named James, Prick-ear, Robin, and
—
;
Sparrow. —
Several witnesses poor and ignorant people
brought to testify to the mischief which had been done by these
were
means; and some declared that they had seen theii: imps. A
countryman gravely related hovi, passing at daybreak by the
house of one of the women accused, named Anne West, he was
surprised to find her door open at that early hour, and looking in,
he saw three or four things like black rabbits, one of which ran
after him. Pie seized upon it and tried to kill it, but it seemed
in his hands like a piece of wool, and stretched out in length as
he pulled it without any apparent injury. Then recollecting
that there was a spring near at hand, he hurried thither and at-
tempted to drown it, but it vanished from his sight as soon as he
put it in the water. Pie then returned toward the house, and
seeing Anne West standing outside the door in her smock, he
asked her why she sent her imps to torment him.
This seems to have been the first appearance of Matthew Hop-
kins in the character of a v.'itch-finder, for which he afterward
became so notorious, and which he now assumed as a legal pro-
fession, lie proceeded in a regular circuit through Sufiblk, Nor-
folk, Cambridgeshire, and Huntingdon, accompanied with John
Sterne and a woman whose business it was to examine the bodies
of the females in search of their marks. In August of 1645, we
find them at Bury, in Suffolk, where, on the 27th of that month,
no less than eighteen witches were executed at once, and a hun-
dred and twenty more were to have been tried, but a sudden
movement of the king's troops in that direction obliged the judges
to adjourn the session. Some of the imps here appeared in the
shapes of snakes, v/asps, and hornets, and even of snails. They
were mostly employed in petty offences one man and his wife
;
tliem they ran away in most horrid long ugly shapes." Anne
Leach, of Mistley, Essex, who was tried here, said that the imps
" did mischief wherever they went, and that when this examinant
did not send and employ them abroad to do mischief, she had not
her health, but when they were employed she was healthful and
well."
The most remarkable victim of this inquisition at Bury was an
aged clergjanan named Lowes, who had been vicar of Brandeston
near Framlingham in that county, fifty years, a well-known op-
ponent of the new church government. This man, we are told
by Sterne, one of the inquisitors, "had been indicted for a com-
mon imbarrator, and for witchcraft, above thirty years before, and
the grand jury (as I have heard) found the bill for a common im-
barrator, who now, after he was found with the marks, in his con-
fession he confessed that in pride of heart to be equal, or rather
above God, the devil took advantage of him, and he covenanted
with the devil, and sealed it with his blood, and had those famil-
iars or spirits, which sucked *on the marks found on his body,
and did much harm both by sea and land, especially by sea, for
he confessed, that he being at Lungarfort [Lan guard -fort] in Suf-
folk, where he preached, as he walked upon the wall or works
there, he saw a great sail of ships pass by, and that, as they were
sailing by, one of his three imps, namely, his yellow one, forth-
with appeared to him and asked him what he should do, and he
bad it go and sink such a ship, and showed his imp a new ship
among the middle of the rest (as I remember), one that belonged
to Ipswich, so he confessed the imp went forthwith away, and
he stood still and viewed the ships on the sea as they were a
sailing, and perceived that ship immediately to be in more trou-
ble and danger than the rest ; for he said the water was more
boisterous near that than the rest, tumbling up and down with
waves, as if water had been boiled in a pot, and soon after (he
said) in a short time it sunk directly down into the sea as he
stood and viewed it, v/hen all the rest sailed down in safety then
;
was joyful to see what power his imps had and so likewise
:
therein the devil deceived him for he was hanged that Michael-
;
mas time, 1645, at Bury St. Edmunds but he made a very far
;
he drew from his pocket, he gave her some money, and went
away. Next night he appeared again, and told her he had not
the power to injure the man because he went regularly to hear
pious ministers, and said his prayers night and morning and it
;
was then agreed that he should punish the maid. The night fol-
lowing he returned with the same story as regarded the maid,
but he said there was a child in the family that might be injured.
The woman having consented, he came next night with an image
of wax intended to represent the child, and they went together
to the churchyard and buried it. The child was immediately
taken ill, and it had languished in this condition eighteen months,
when the witch was seized and brought to the witch-finder's
"justice." She was taken to the room where the child lay, and
she had no sooner repeated her confession there, than it began
to recover. They took the woman next morning to the church-
yard, Avhere she pointed to the exact spot where the waxen im-
age was buried, but when they dug they found nothing. The
THE WITCHES AT FAVERSHAM. 307
that she verily thinks it was alive." Another, who had been
twenty years acquainted with a demon which first appeared to
her in the shape of a hedgehog, but as soft as a cat, " at her first
coming into the jail spake very much to the others that were ap-
prehended before her to confess if they were guilty and stood
;
to it very perversely that she was clear of any such thing, and
that if they put her into the water to try her she should certainly
sink. But when she was put into the water, and it was appa-
rent that she did float upon the water, being taken forth, a gen-
tleman to whom before she had so confidently spoken, and with
whom she off'ered to lay twenty shillings to one that she could
not swim, asked her how it was possible that she could be so
impudent as not to confess herself, when she had so much per-
suaded the others to confess to whom she answered, that the
;
devil went with her all the way, and told her that she should
sink, but, when she was in the water, he sat upon a cross-beam
and laughed at her." The third of the Faversham witches, whose
term of twenty years for which she had sold herself to Satan
was nearly expired, and whose familiar was a little dog named
Bun, deposed " that the devil promised her that she should not
lack, and that she had money sometimes brought to her she knevv
not whence, sometimes one shilling, sometimes sixpence, never
more at once." The incapacity of the tempter to give more than
a small sum of money at a time to any of his victims, was a pe-
culiar article in the English popular creed. "In 1645," says
Baxter, " in Dorsetshire, I lodged at a village on a hill, called
(I think) Evershot, in the house of the minister, a grave man,
who had with him a son, also a learned minister, that had
been chaplain to Sir Thomas Adams in London. They both
308 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
told me, that tliey had a neighbor that had long lain bed-rid,
that told all the occasion ; that for a long time, being a poor la-
boring man, every morning when he went out of his door, he
found a shilling under his door, of which he told no man, so that
in a long time, he buying some sheep or swine, and seeming rich,
his neighbors marvelled how he came by it. At last he told them,
and was suddenly struck lame and bed-rid. They would have
nie speak with the man but the snow covering the ground, and
;
said she lacked nothing. Then they prayed her to give them
JOHN GAULE RE&IgTS HOPKINS, 309
some victuals, and she said she was poor and had none to give
them, and so they departed." Yet she confessed that Blaclcman,
Grissell, and Greedigut, divers times came to her afterward, and
brought her two or three shillings at a time. Elizabeth Chandler
was accused of having tvv^o imps named Beelzebub and Trulli-
bub but she denied it, and stated that she called a certain log
;
she would be reveiiged, and the next day one of his hogs died."
It was apparently just before his visit to Huntingdon to under-
take these examinations, which took place during the months of
March and April of the year 1646, that Hopkins went to Kimbol-
ton. The reports of his sanguinary proceedings had spread con-
sternation far and wide, and it was only here and there that any
one durst raise a voice against him. One of these courageous
individuals was John Gaule, the minister of Great Staughton,
near Kirabolton, in Huntingdonshire, who took up the cudgels
against Hopkins, and provoked his wrath to such a degree, that
he wrote the following insolent letter to one of the chief persons
in his parish. " My service to your worship presented, I have
this day received a letter to come to a town called Great Staugh-
ton, to search for evil-disposed persons called witches (though I
hear your minister is against us through ignorance), I intend to
come (God willing) the sooner to hear his singular judgment in
behalf of such parties. I have known a minister in Suflolk
preach as much against the discovery in a pulpit, and forced to
recant it (by the committee) in the same place. I much marvel
such evil members should have any, much more any of the cler-
gy who should daily preach terror to convince such offenders,
stand up to take their parts against such as are complainants for
the king and sufferers themselves with their families and estates.
I intend to give yolir town a visit suddenly. I am to come to
Kimbolton this week, and it shall be ten to one but I will come
to your town first ; but I would certainly know afore whether
your town affords many sticklers for such cattle, or willing to
give and afford us good welcome and entertainment, as other
where I have been, else I shall waive your shire (not as yet be-
310 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
is watched and kept without meat or sleep for the space of four-
and-twenty hours (for they say within that time they shall see
her imp come and suck). A little hole is likewise made in the
door for the imp to come in at and lest they should come in
;
knew not what she had confessed, and had nothing she called
Nan but a pullet, that she sometimes called by that name."
Tortures like these, and even worse, were exercised on Parson
Lowes of Brandeston, to force a confession from him. Dr.
Hutchinson learned "from them that watched with him, that
they kept him awake several nights together, and run him back-
ward and forward about the room, until he was out of breath;
then they rested him a little, and then ran him again ; and thus
they did for several days and nights together, till he was weary
of his life, and was scarce sensible of what he said or did.
They swam him at Framlingham, but that was no true rule to
try him by ;for they put in honest people at the same time, and
they swam as well as he."
To escape the odium which pursued him through the counties
in which he had made himself so conspicuous, Hopkins appears
to have now removed the scene of his labors into other parts of
the kingdom. We find him not long after this at Worcester.
On the fourth of March, probably of the year 1647, four witches
were condemned in that city, and Matthew Hopkins was one of
the principal witnesses. After the same process of watching
her, he extracted from one of them a confession that Satan had
appeared to her as a handsome young man, that he said he came
to marry her, and that he accordingly took her as his wife. An-
other said that she only enjoyed her health while her imp was
employed in doing mischief. These were imitations of the con-
fessions made in Essex and Suflblk. The witches atW^orcester
said they tormented and killed people by making figures of wax,
and sticking pins and needles into them. On their trial, one of
them denied their confession, and said that when they confessed
they were not in their senses.
On his return to his native county, Hopkins was assailed on
312 SORCERY AND MAGIO.
Hopkins, 'witch-fiuder, for the benefit of the whole kingdom. Printed lor R. Roy-
ston, at the Angel, in Iron Lane, 1647." This is a very rare tract, and the only
copy I know of was in the possession of Sir Walter Scott, from whose '• Letters
on Demonology and Witchcraft," 1 take tiie title,
t The lines of Hudibras have been often quoted :—
Hath not this present parliament
A lieger to the devil sent,
Fully empowered to set about
Finding revolted witches out ?
And has he not within a year
Hanged threescore of them in one shire ?
Some only for not being drowned,
And some for sitting above ground
Whole days and nights upon their breeches,
And feeling pain, were hanged for witches.
And some for putting knavish tricks
Upon green geese or Turkey chicks
Or pigs that suddenly deceased
Of griefs unnatural, as he guessed,
Who proved himself at length a witch,
And made a rod for his own breech.
Hudibras, Part ii., Canto 3,
THE OLD WOMAN OF DROITWITCH. 313
upon me for what hath been received, but I hope such suits will
be disannulled, and that where I have ^been out of moneys for
towns in charges and otherwise, such course will be taken that
I may be satisfied and paid with reason."* Hopkins himself,
in defending himself against the charge of interestedness, tells
us that his regular charge was twenty shillings for each town,
including the expenses of living, and journeying thither and
back. In his book, he confesses that besides the other prac-
tices of stripping the victims naked, and thrusting pins into va-
rious parts of their body, in search of marks, and swimming them,
he had practised the new torture of keeping them awake, and
forcing them to walk, which was an invention of his own but ;
* A copy of tliis excessively rare book is in the rich libraiy of works on demon-
ology of Mr. James Crossley of Manchester. I only know it through the extracts
given in that geutlemau's recent edition of Potts' Discovery of Witches.
27
314 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
man declared had seen nothing but a " wench," who passed
lie
him apparently This wench was taken and ex-
in great haste.
amined, and the wounds caused by the prongs of the fork were
found on her thigh. She was taken to Gloucester, and at the
next assizes tried and convicted. In the month of July follow-
ing, a man and woman v\'ere executed at St. Albans the man ;
confessed he had been a witch sixty years, and that he had gen-
erally exercised his profession as a white or beneficent witch.
He was probably one of those miserable impostors Avho gained
their living by conjuring to cure diseases, and help people to
what was His accom.plice was a kinswoman,
lost or stolen.
who lived with him, andhad a familiar in the shape of a cat.
She acknowledged that this familiar had promised to bring her
anything she wanted, except money. They said there were
plenty of other witches about the neighborhood, and accused
several persons by name.
This year, however, witnessed a much more remarkable af-
fair than any of these, and one which made a considerable sen-
sation. It has gained in modern times an additional importance
from the circumstance that the great historical novelist. Sir
Walter Scott, has made it the foundation of one of his ro-
mances. I shall give it nearly in the words of the report writ-
ten at or near the time.
After Charles's death, the royal property Vvas confiscated to
the state, and commissioners were appointed by parliament to
survey and sell the crown lands. Among the royal estates was
the manor of Woodstock, of which the parliamentary commis-
sioners were sent to take possession in the month of October,
1649. The more fanatical part of the opponents of royalty had
always taught that, through witches and otherwise, the devil was
actively engaged in the service of their opponents, battling
against them and they now found him resolved upon more
;
but on the 16th there came, as they thought, something into the
bed-chamber, where two of the commissioners and their servant
lay, in the shape of a dog, which going under their bed, did, as
it were, gnaw their bed-cords ; but on the morrow finding them
whole, and a quarter of beef which lay on the ground untouched,
they " began to entertain other thoughts." October 17. — Some-
thing, to their thinicing, removed all the wood of the king's oak
out of the dining-room to the presence-chamber, and hurled the
chairs and stools up and down that room ; from whence it came
into the two chambers where the two commissioners and their
servants lay, and hoisted up their bed feet so much higher than
their heads, that they thought they should have been turned over
and over, and then let them fall down wath such force, that their
bodies rebounded from the bed a good distance ; and then shook
the bedsteads so violently, that they declared their bodies were
sore with it. On the 18th, something came into the chamber
and walked up and down, and fetching the warming-pan out of
the withdrav/ing-room, made so much noise that they thought
fire-bells could not have made more. Next day trenclaers were
thrown up and down the dining-room, and at those who slept
there ; one of them being wakened, put forth his head to see
what was the matter, and had trenchers thrown at him. On the
20th, the curtains of the bed in the withdrawing-room were
drawn to and fro the bedstead was much shaken, and eight
;
chamber, glass flew aboiit so thick (and yet not one of the cham-
ber-windows broken), that they thought it had rained money ;
whereupon they lighted candles, but " to their grief they found
nothing but glass." On the 29th something going to the window
opened and shut it, then going into the bed-chamber, it threw
great stones for half an hour's time, some whereof fell on the
high-bed, others on the truckle-bed, to the number in all of aboA^e
fourscore. This night there was also a very great noise, as if
forty pieces of ordnance had been shot off together. It aston-
ished all the neighborhood, and it was thought it must have been
heard a great way off. During these noises, which were heard
in both rooms together, the commissioners and their servants
were struck with so great horror, that they cried out one to an-
other for help whereupon one of them recovering himself out
;
of a " strange agony" he had been in, snatched a sword, and had
like to have killed one of his brethren coming out of his bed in
his shirt, whom he took for the spirit that did the mischief.
However, at length they got all together, yet the noise contin-
ued so great and terrible, and shook the walls so much, that
they thought the whole manor would have fallen on their heads.
At the departure of the supernatural disturber of their repose,
" it took all the glass of the windows away with it." On the
first of November, something, as the commissioners thought,
walked up and down the withdrawing-room, and then made a
noise in the dining-room. The stones which were left before,
and laid up in the withdrawing-room, were all fetched away this
night, and a great deal of glass (not like the former) thrown
about again.
On the second of November, there came something into the
withdrawing-room, treading, as they conceived, much like a bear,
which began by walking about for a quarter of an hour, and then
at length it made a noise about the table and threw the warming-
pan so violently that it was quite spoiled. It threw also a glass
and great stones at the commissioners again, and the bones of
horses and all so violently, that the bedstead and the walls were
;
bruised by them. That night they planted candles all about the
rooms, and made fires up to the " rantle-trees" of the chimney,
27*
318 SOKCERY AND MAGIC.
but all were put out, nobody knew how, the fire and burnt wood be-
ing thrown up and down the room the curtains were torn with the
;
rods from their beds, and the bed-posts pulled away, that the tes-
ter fell down upon them, and the feet of the bedstead were cloven
into two. The servants in the truckle-bed, who lay all the time
sweating for fear, were treated even worse, for there came upon
them first a little which made them begin to stir, but before they
could get out, it was followed by a whole tubful, as it were, of
stinking ditch water, so green, that it made their shirts and sheets
of that color too. The same night the windows were all broke
by throwing of stones, and there was most terrible noises in
three several places together near them. Nay, the very rabbit-
stealers who were abroad that night were so affrighted with the
dismal thundering, that for haste they left their ferrets in the
holes behind them, beyond Rosamond's well. Notwithstanding
all this, one of them had the boldness to ask, in the name of God,
what it was, what it would have, and what they had done that
they should be so disturbed after this manner. To which no
answer was given, but the noise ceased for a while. At length
it came again, and, as all of them said, brought seven devils worse
did not bleed ; the woman was hindered from replying by shame
and fear, and he immediately took out the pin and set her aside
as a convicted witch. Ey this atrocious process, he ascertained
that twenty-seven persons were practisers of sorcery, and at the
ensuing assizes fourteen women and a man v.'ere found guilty
and 'executed. The names of the sufferers are recorded in the
register of the parish'of St. Andrev/'s.
Just at the time when the commonwealth was merging into
the protectorate, in the years 1652, '53, we find cases of witch-
craft becoming suddenly more numei'ous, or, which is perhaps
nearer the truth, there were for some cause or other more print-
ed reports of them. In the former year a witch was hanged at
Worcester. On the 11th of April, 1652, one Joan Peterson,
known as the witch of Wapping, was hanged at Tyburn. She
lived in Spruce island, near Shadwell, and was said to have done
on the whole more good than harm, for she practised chiefly as
a white v/itch. Strange things, however, were told of her. A
man deposed he was sitting with her in her house and saw
that
her familiar, in the shape of a black dog, come in and suck her.
And two women said that, as they were watching with a child
of one of their neighbors that was strangely distempered, " about
midnight they espied (to their thinking) a great black cat come to
the cradle's side and stopped the cradling, whereupon one of the
320 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
women told him what they had seen, who said he thought in his
conscience that Peterson had bewitched the aforesaid child, for
(quoth the baker), I met the witch a little before going down the
'
island.' " The baker gave his testimony in court, and when asked
by the judge the very pertinent question, " whether he had not
at other times as well as that been afraid of a cat, he answered
no, and that he never saw such a cat before, and hoped in God
he should never see the like again."
On the 30th of July, 1652, no less than six witches were con-
demned at Maidstone, in Kent. In addition to the usual circum-
stances in such cases, they confessed that the devil had given
them a piece of flesh, " which, whensoever they should touch
they should thereby effect their desires that this flesh lay hid
;
many that the body of a witch being burnt, her blood is prevent-
ed thereby from becoming hereditary to her progeny in the same
evil, while by hanging it is not ; but whether this opinion be er-
roneous or not, I," says the narrator, " am not to dispute."
The following year (1653) witnessed the execution at Salis-
bury, of a woman who had been in her younger days the servant
of the famous Dr. Lamb. Her name was Anne Bodenham, and
she appears to have been initiated into Lamb's practices, and to
have settled at Salisbury in the character of a wise woman.
She helped people to recover things stolen, cured diseases, and
seems to have carried on the practice of poisoning. Many of
those charged with the crime of witchcraft appear to have been.
SIR ROBERT FILMOR. 321
This, Ady says, was told by an old witch who declared that her
grandmother had learned it in the good days of Queen Mary.
The was certainly not favorable
reign of the protector Oliver
Yet two persons, a mother and
to the persecution of witches.
daughter, were hanged at Bury St. Edmonds, about the year
1655, and in the November of 1657 a rather remarkable case
occurred at Shepton Mallet in Somersetshire. A vt^oman named
Jane Brooks was accused of bewitching a boy named Jones, by
giving him an apple, Avhich he roasted and ate. He was imme-
diately seized with strange fits, and v.'hile under their influence
he cried out against Jane Brooks and her sister as the cause of
his suffering. It was deposed at the trial that, one Sunday
afternoon, in company with his father and a cousin named Gib-
son, he v/as suddenly visited with a fit, and he said that he saw
Jane Brooks against the wall of the room, pointing to the spot
where he pretended she stood. Gibson took up a knife and
struck at the part of the wall to which the boy pointed, and the
latter immediately exclaimed, " Oh, father! Cousin Gibson hath
cut Jane Brook's hand,~^and it is bloody!" They immediately
took a constable, and went with him to the woman's house,
where they found her silting on a stool, with her hands before
her, one placed on the other. The constable inquired how she
A REPUBLICAN WITCH. 323
did, and she replied, not well. He then asked her why she
sat in that position, with her hands before her, to which she re-
plied that it was her wont to do so. When he asked further if
nothing ailed her hand, she said, " No, it was well enough."
Still not satisfied, he forced one hand from under the other, and
found it bleeding just as the boy had described. On being asked
how this happened, she said she had scratched her hand with a
great pin.* This was sufficient matter for carrying the woman
to prison. It was pretended that the boy was often lifted about
in an extraordinary manner and one woman declared that oil
;
the 25th of February, 1658, being seized with one of his fits
while in her house, he went out of the house into the garden,
and she followed him. There she saw him gradually lifted up
into the air, and pass away over a wall, 3.nd she saw no more
of him till he was found lying at the door of a house at some
distance, when he declared that he had been carried there by
Jane Brooks. She was tried at Chard assizes, on the 26th of
March, 1658, and, as might be expected from such conclusive
evidence, condemned.
About the period of the protector's death, a witch was hanged
at Norwich, and sevei'al punished in the same way in Cornwall ;
appeared to the person affiicted, who, pointing at the spectre, one struck at the place,
and the afflicted said, '-You have made her forehead bleed.' Hereupon some
went to the woman, and found her forehead bloody, and acquainted Mr. Clark
with it; who forthwith went to the woman, and asked how her forehead became
bloody and she answered, by a blow of the cow's horn ;' whereby he was satis-
;
'
tliough lie now doth come, yet he shall not live long, but shall
die as a death as they
ill and that they would have made corn
;
against them, and little proved, they were put to the ducking in
the river they would not sink, but swam aloft.
: The man had
five teats, the women three, and the eldest daughter one. When
they went to search the women, none were visible one advised ;
to laythem on their backs and keep open their mouths, and then
they would appear and so they presently appeared in sight."
;
CHAPTER XXVI.
take tlie trouble of setting down their names, but they were cited
as the accused, Nos. 1,2, 3, and so on. The Jesuits took their
confessions in private, and they made up the list of those who
were understood to have been denounced by them.
Lutheranism had been gaining ground in Wiirzburg more even
than in Bamberg, and when Bishop Julius came to the see in
1575, the majority of the population was protestant. The ener-
gy with which he set about making converts alarmed many of
those who had anything to lose in the world, and the number of
" heretics" was thus soon diminished. Nevertheless, Bishop
Philip Adolph, who came to the see in 1623, found a sufficient
number of protestants to excite his alarm, and not daring, in the
political position of Germany at that moment, to persecute them
openly for their religion, he adopted the plan of his neighbor of
Bamberg. A great confederacy of sorcerers was suddenly dis-
covered, and during two or three years hundreds of people, of all
ages and conditions, v/ere hurried to the stake. A catalogue of
nine-and-twenty brdnde, or burnings, during a very short period
of time previous to the February of 1629, will give the best no-
tion of the horrible character of these proceedings it is printed
;
Tungersleber, a minstrel.
The wife of Kuler.-
The wife of Stier, a proctor.
The brushmaker's wife.
The goldsmith's wife.
The midwife. N.B. She was the origin of all the mischief.
Old Rume's wife.
A strange man.
In the Fifth Burning, Eight Persons.
Bentze's daughter.
Bentze's wife herself.
The wife of Eyering.
In the Tenth Burning, Three Persons.
The wife of the apothecary at the Hirsch [the Stag), and her
daughter.
—
N.B. A woman Avho played the harp had hanged herself.
Batsch, a tanner.
Two boys of twelve years old.
The daughter of Dr. Junge.
A girl of fifteen years of age.
A strange woman.
—
ed with his sentence they went to him and told him, in ambig-
uous language, that he was to prepare for a better life than that
he had hitherto led, and then took him into the castle. Here he
recognised with an innocent joy the scenes of his childish gam-
bols " there," said he, " I played, there I drank, there I
;
intercede with the bishop in his favor. The prince made a last
attempt, and sent a messenger to offer him forgiveness if he
would promise a thorough reformation. But the messenger re-
turned with an answer that all was in vain, for the devil had so
hardened the youth, that he boldly declared he would remain as
he was, that he had no need of repentance or change, and that
if he were not so already, he would wish to become so. Then
the prince sternly signified his will that justice should take its
course. They dragged the youth again into the dark chamber,
supported on each side by a Jesuit, who urged him to repentance ;
CHAPTER XXVII.
at ane tyme, and a peice creische (grease) out of his bag at ane
uther tyme." The devil's terms, on this occasion, were not very
exorbitant. This first interview took place some thirteen years
before the time of his trial, and he had since that had frequent
meetings with the evil one, who appeared sometimes in the form
of a man, and sometimes in that of a horse. His grand specific
in effecting his cures was water from a south-running stream.
Among the crimes enumerated in his indictment were several
" cures" performed, to use the words of the record, " in his dev-
ilish manner ;" but the most serious charge against him was a
conspiracy against the life of one David Libbertoun, a baker of
Edinburgh. There was a feud between this man and the family
of John Crystie, of Crystiesoun's mylne, or mill, arising perhaps
from some dishonest transactions between them, for in former
days the roguery of bakers and millers was proverbial. Crys-
tie's daughter, Jonet, and some other women of the family ap-
plied to James Reid for revenge, and he held a consultation with
the fiend for the purpose of bringing destruction on Libbertoun,
his family, goods, and corn. James's instructor made him take
a piece of raw flesh, on which he made nine nicks or notches,
and " enchanted the same." The flesh was given to Jonet Crys-
tie, one half to be laid under the door of Libbertoun's mill, and
the other under the door of his stable ; the object of the latter
being to bewitch his horses and cattle. Satan also enchanted
nine stones, which were to be thrown on David Libbertoun's
lands, to destroy his corn. They next made a " picture" of wax,
which the fiend also " enchanted ;" and this the women roasted
at a fire in Crystie's house, to effect the destruction of Libber-
toun himself. The latter in due course died.
In England they were contented with the cheaper and easier
process of hanging the witches, but in Scotland, as in Germany,
the good old system of burning was still persevered in, although
they now generally put the victims to death by strangling, or
some other means, before they were committed to the flames.
This act of mercy was probably occasioned by the horrible scenes
that burning alive continually gave rise to. We learn from the
minutes of the Scotch privy council, that, on the 1st of Decem-
ber, 1608, " The earl of Mar declared to the council that some
PATRICK LOWRIE. 337
broke out of the fire, and were cast quick in it again, till they
were burnt to death."
James Reid was wirreit, or strangled, and then burnt.
We learn from these same registers, that a man named Pat-
rick Lowrie, of Halie in Ayrshire, commonly known by the
name of Pat the witch, suffered the same fate in the July of the
year 1605. This man had been in confederacy with several
women witches, and on the Whitsunday of 1604 they had held
a meeting with the evil one on the Sandhills in Kyle, near the
burgh of Irvine. On Hallow-Eve, the same year, they assem-
bled again on Lov/don-hill, where a spirit, in the likeness of a
woman, who called herself Helen M'Brune, appeared to them,
and after a long consultation, gave Patrick a hair-belt, " in one
of the ends of which belt appeared the similitude of four fingers
and a thumb, not far different from the clav\^s of the devil."' They
afterward visited the neighboring churches and churchyards, to
dig up the dead from their graves, and dismember them, " for
the practising of their witchcraft and sorcery." This man, like
the former, injured some people, and performed cures for others ;
times through the " cruik," or iron on which the pot was hung
over the fire and then they went with all speed to Seatoim
;
swered her, tak na feir, for ye sail gang to your sister Beigis,
'
and to the rest of hir cumpanie quha ar stayand upon your cum-
ing at the thorn.' " Then they all went with Satan to the iron
gate of Seatoun, where they again took a cat, and drew it nine
times through the iron gate. Immediately afterward they went
to a barn, where they christened the cat, and called her Mar-
garet. Tiiey then returned to Deanefate, where they first met,
and cast the cat to the evil one. We are not told the object of
these strange proceedings.
The year 1613 was rendered remarkable in the annals of
Scottish sorcery by two very extraordinary cases, one of which
belonged to high life. John Erskine, laird of Dun in the coun-
ty of Angus, and grandson of the celebrated John Erskine who
held the office of superintendent of Angus and Mearnes, and dis-
tinguished himself by his exertions in support of the Reforma-
tion, had two sons, David, who inherited the lordship, and Rob-
ert, and three daughters, Helen, Isobel, and Anne. David
Erskine, the elder brother, died young, leaving two boys, John
and Alexander, the former of whom was acknowledged as the
young laird. Robert Erskine and his three sisters seem to have
been more attached to one another than to their late brother the
;
one of which was made handsome and with fair hair, he supposed
to represent Provost Tran. They proceeded to make a figure
of a ship in clay, and while they were thus occupied, the devil
appeared in the shape of a handsome black lap-dog. When the
ship was made, the whole party, Satan and all, left the house to-
gether, and went into an empty waste house near the seaport.
They afterward proceeded to the seaside, and cast in the figures
of clay representing the ship and the men, and immediately the
sea raged, roared, and became red like the juice of madder in a
dyer's caldron. Margaret Barclay's female acquaintances were
next convened, and when John Stewart was introduced to them,
he at once fixed upon an old woman named Insh, as one of the
persons engaged in making the figures. This woman stoutly
denied all knowledge of the matter, and said she never saw her
accuser before but the magistrates now brought forward her
;
own daughter, a girl only eight years old, who lived in Margaret
Barclay's house as a servant, and who had been made by some
means or other to declare that she had been a witness to the
scene described by the juggler, and that her mother was one of
the persons engaged in it. This little girl improved upon the
details given by Stewart she described other persons as being
;
present, added a black man to the black dog, and said that the
latter breathed flames from its jaws and nostrils, which illumina-
ted the witches during the performance of the spell. She said
that they had promised her a pair of new shoes to keep the se-
cret, and that her mother, Isobel Insh, remained in the waste-
house, and was not present when the images were thrown into
the sea.
John Stewart now underwent a new examination, and added
to his own story so as to make it agree with that of the child.
When asked how he gained the knowledge of things to come,
he told a strange story of his adventures with the fairies ; it was
probably a tale he had been accustomed to recount among the
people where he visited in the exercise of his craft to give him-
self importance in their eyes, and which he now half-uncon-
sciously repeated before his judges. He stated that about twen-
ty-six years before, as he was travelling on the night of All-hal-
low's eve, between the towns of " Monygoif " and " Clary," in
the county of Galway (in Ireland), he met with the king of the
fairies and his company, and the king struck him over the forehead
with a white rod, which deprived him of the power of speech and
the use of one eye. After remaining in this condition during
three years, his speech and eyesight were restored to him by
MARGARET BARCLAY. 343
the king of the fairies and his company, whom he again met on
a Hallowe'en night near Dublin, since which time he had been
in the habit of joining these people every Saturday at seven
o'clock in the evening, and remaining with them all that night.
They likewise met every Hallowtide, sometimes on Lanark
hill, er, as Scott supposes, Tintock, and sometimes on Kilmaurs
hill, when he w^as taught by them. Stewart pointed out the spot
on his forehead Avhere the king of the fairies struck him with a
white rod, whereupon, after he had been blindfolded by order of
the magistrates and ministers who w'ere directing the examina-
tion, they pricked the spot with a large pin, of which he appeared
to be quite insensible. He repeated the names of many persons
whom he had seen at the court of faerie, and declared that all
persons who were taken away by sudden death w^ent thither.
After these confessions, Isobel Insh was more hardly pressed
to " tell the truth," and at length she confessed that she was pres-
ent at the making and drowning of the clay images, but declared
that she took no part in the proceedings. She was at this mo-
ment in such a state of mind, that she evidently knew not what
she was doing, and she supplicated her jailer. Bailie Dunlop, to
let her go, promising him, for he also was a mariner, that if he
did so, he should never make a bad voyage, but have success in
all his dealings by sea and land, a promise tha't was easily con-
strued into an acknowledgment that she possessed the powers
attributed to her. Before she Avas conducted back to her prison
in the belfry, she was made to promise that she would fully con-
fess next day, but in the night she made a desperate attempt at
escape. Althouoh secured with iron bolts, locks, and fetters, she
succeeded in getting out at a back window, and reached the roof
of the church, for here she lost her footing and fell to the ground.
She was so much hurt and bruised, that she survived but five
days, during which time she resolutely persisted in asserting her
innocence, and denied all that she had before admitted. In spite
of the evident causes of her death, the inhabitants of Irvine at-
tributed it to poison.
A commission was now granted for the trial of John Stewart
and Margaret Barclay, and when the appointed day arrived,
"My lord and earl of Eglintoune (who dwells within the space
of one mile to the said burgh) having come to the. said burgh at
the earnest request of the said justices, for giving to them of his
lordship's countenance, concm-rence, and assistance, in trying
of the foresaid devilish practices, conformable to the tenor of the
foresaid commission, the said John Stewart, for his better pre-
344 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
one by one, and then eking and augmenting the weight by laying
on more gauds, and in easing of her by off-taking of the iron
gauds one or more as occasion offered, which iron gauds were
but httle short gauds, and broke not the skin of her legs. After
vising of the which kind of gentle torture, the said Margaret be-
gan, according to the increase of the pain, to cry and crave for
God's cause to take off her shins the foresaid irons, and she
would declare truly ihe whole matter. Which being removed,
she began at her former denial and being of new arrayed in tor-
;
off! and before God I shall show you the whole form !' And the
said irons being of new, upon her faithful promise, removed, she
then desired my lord of Eglintoune, the said four justices, and
the said jMr. David Dickson, minister at the burgh, Mr. George
Dunbar, minister of Ayr, and Mr. Mitchell Wallace, minister of
Kilmarnock, Mr. John Cunninghame, minister of Dairy, and
Hugh Keimedy, provost of Ayr, to come by themselves, and to
remove all others, and she should declare truly as she should
answer to God the whole matter. Whose desire in that being
fulfilled, without any kind of demand, freely, without interroga-
tion, God's name by earnest prayer being called upon for open-
ing of her lips, and easing of her heart, that she, by rendering of
the truth, might glorify and magnify his holy name, and disappoint
the enemy of her salvation."
Margaret Barclay's confession was a mere acknowledgment
of the truth of what had been said by the others, but she declared
that her purpose was to kill none but her brother-in-law and Pro-
vost Tran. To make, up the number of persons pretended to
have been present at the making of the images, she introduced
the name of another woman of Irvine, Isobel Crawford ; wbo
was thereupon arrested, and in great terror con.fessed it all. But
when they proceeded with the trial, Alexander Dein, the husband
of Margaret Barclay, appeared in court with a lawyer to act in
her defence, and.she was asked by the lawyer if she wished to
be defended, to which she made answer " As you please but
: ;
again to the said Cuthbert, she took him by the arm and bade
him arise, who at that time and fifteen days before was not able
to lift his legs without help yet she, having urged him to rise,
;
and taking him by the hand, as said is, brought him out of his
bed, and thereafter led him about the house who immediately
;
MARGARET WALLACE. 347
twixt Robert Stewart his taking the cup and ofl'ering it to Mar-
garet Wallace, the said Margaret took a sudden brasche'of sick- '
met her by- the way !' And Cristiane Grahame answered Faith, :
'
he met me not, but came and brought me out of ray own cham-
ber ;and fra I heard that my bird was sa diseased, I sped me
hither.' Says, thereafter, that Cristiane Grahame took Margaret
Wallace by the shakel-bone, and kist her and in her arms ;
carried her down the stairs, saying to her, nothing should ail
343 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
ponent, with David Scheirar and the said Marioun Mure, sat
down at the board together and within a short space thereafter,
;
lace's incoming, a goose was set down on the board and the de-
;
not."
Some pains seem to have been taken in this vt^oman's defence,
and the worst accusation against her appears to have been her
acquaintance with Cristiane Grahame but the jury brought her
;
ised to cure her thereof; and for this effect called for her sark,
and desired two of her nearest friends' to go with him, like as
'
John and William Thomesone, her brothers, being sent for, past
with the said Thomas in the night season, from Corachie toward
Burley, by the space of twelve miles, and enjoyned the two
brothers not to speak a word all the way and whatever they
;
arose and flittered in the water. And coming home with the
sark, put the same upon hei", and cured her of her sickness."
As I have before intimated, there may be some affinity be-
tween this process and the modern cure by wet sheets in the
;
CHAPTER XXVIII.
reader's desk, and held a black book in his hand. After being
duly introduced to the company, the new convert was made to
deny her baptism, and then, placing one hand on the crown of
her head and the other imder the sole of her foot, she gave
everything between them to the fiend. Margaret Brodie, of
Auldearn, acted as her fostermother, and held her up to the devil
to be baptized. He marked her on the shoulder, and sucked the
blood, which" spouted" into his hand, and with this he sprinkled
her on the head, rebaptizing her in his own name by the nickname
of Janet. After this ceremony, the whole party separated.
Shortly afterward the devil met Isobel again, alone, at the
" New Wards" of Inshoch, and there the bond between them
was completed. She described her new lord as a " mickle,
black, rough man," with forked and cloven feet, which he some-
times concealed by wearing boots or shoes. Sometimes he ap-
peared in the shape of a deer, or roe, or other animal.
To each covine was one female of more consideration than
the others, Satan's favorite, who was chosen as the best looking
of the younger witches, and she was called the maiden of the
covine ; and there was a man, who was their officer. The
witches had only power to do injuries of an inferior kind when
the maiden was not with them. They met from time to time to
dance at places which seem to have been under fairy influence,
such as the hill of Earlseat, the mickle burn, and the Downie
hills, generally one or two covines at a time, Avhere they danced ;
but they had larger general meetings toward the end of each
quarter of a year. Jane Martin, a young lass of Auldearn, was
the maiden of the covine to which Isobel Gowdie belonged. We
352 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
have seen that in her intercourse with the evil one, each witch
was known by a new name. Thus Jane Martin was named
" Over-the-dyke-with-it," because she used to sing these words
when she was dancing with the devil. Her mother, Isobel Nic-
oll, went by the name of Bessie Rule; Margaret Wilson was
And when the witch shot at anybody with them, she said :
When they shot the arrow-heads at their victims, they " spang"
them from their thumb-nails sometimes they missed their ob-
;
ject, but if they touched they carried certain death, even if the
victim were cased in armor.
The account of what passed at the sabbaths of these Scottish
witches is very imperfect, and the little that is told will be better
passed over. The arch-fiend seems to have taken great delight
in beating his subjects cruelly wilh ropes and thongs, and he re-
sented bitterly any act of disrespect. " Sometimes among our-
selves," says Isobel Gowdie, " we would be calling him Black
John, or the like, and he would ken it, and hear us well enough ;
and he even then come to us and say, I ken wele eneugh what '
Then they were immediately carried into the air " as straws
would flyupon a highway." If it were at night, and the witch
30*
354 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
were afraid that her husband might miss her from his bed, she
took a besom or three-legged stool, placed it beside him in bed,
and said thrice
and people who see straws flying about the air in a whirlwind on
a fine day, are recommended to bless themselves devoutly, be-
cause if they omit that precaution they are liable to be shot by
the witches who ride on them. " Any that are shot by us," Iso-
bel informs us, "their souls will go to heaven, but their bodies
will remain with us, and will fly as horses to us, as small as
straws." Isobei Gowdie confessed to having killed many peo-
ple in this manner. The first time she went to her covine was
to PloLighlands, where she shot a man between the " plough-
stilts," and he presently fell on his face to the ground. The
devil gave her an arrow to shoot at a woman in the fields, which
she did, and the victim dropped down dead. As they w^ere riding
one day, Isobei by the side of Satan, and Margaret Brodie and
Bessie Hay in close company with them, they met Mr. Harry
Forbes, the minister of Auldearn, going to Moynes, on which the
devil gave Margaret Brodie an arrow to shoot at him. Marga-
ret shot and missed her mark, and the arrow was taken up again
by Satan but when she ofl'ered to shoot again, he said, " No,
;
we can not have his life this time." Presently afterward they
saw the laird of Park, and the devil gave Isobei an arrow.
She shot at him as he was crossing a burn, and, perhaps owing
to this circumstance, missed him, for which Bessie Hay gave her
" a great cuff"."
The witches seem to have entertained an especial hostility
toward these two gentlemen. In the winter of 1660, Mr. Forbes
was sick, it appears, in consequence of a conspiracy of these
enemies. They made a mixture of the galls, flesh, and entrails
of toads, grains of barley, parings of finger and toe nails, the
liver of a hare, and " bits of clouts." These ingredients were
mixed together, and seethed or boiled all night, in water. Satan
was with them during this process, and they repeated after him,
thrice each time, the words —
He is lying in his bed, he is lying sick and sair,
Let him lie intill his bed two months and three days mair.
THE LAIRD OF PARK. 355
And then
Let him lie in bis bed, let him lie intill it sick and sair,
Let him lie intill his bed two mouths and three days mair.
" worthy persons" with him at the time, though she " swung" a
little of the mixture on the bed where he lay.
Mr. Harry Forbes appears to have received no serious injury
from the witches, as he was one of those who sat in court to
hear Isobel's confession. The laird of Park was less fortunate
in his family, if he escaped in his person. A meeting was held
at the house of John Taylor of Auldearn, at which the devil was
present with Isobel Gowdie, John Taylor and his wife, and one
or two others, for the purpose of making a picture of clay,.to de-
stroy the laird of Park's male children. John Taylor brought
home the clay in " his plaidnewk" (a corner of his plaid), and
they broke it into fine powder, and passed it through a sieve.
Then they poured water on it to make a paste, and " wrought it
very sore like rye-bowt." As they threw the water in, they said,
in the devil's name
We pom- in this water among this meal.
For lang dwining [languishing] and heal; ill
male-child was born to him, they let it live six months, and then
destroyed it by the same process. We
are told in the confession
that " till it be broken, it will be the death of all the male-chil-
dren that the laird of Park will ever get. Cast it over a kirk it
will not break, till it be broken with an axe, or some such like
thing, by a man's hand. If it be not broken, it will last a hun-
dred years." This seems to be a remnant of the early belief
which led the Teutonic invaders to destroy the Roman statuary :
When they chose the likeness of a cat, which was the next fa-
vorite form, they said thrice
find the scratches and rywes' on our skins very sore /" About
'
If the wind, on this appeal, did not instantly abate, the witch
called her spirit, and said to him, " Thief, thief, conjure the wind,
and cause it to lie !" Isobel said that they had no power over
rain. One of the witches, whose husband sold cattle, used to
put a swallow's feather in the hide of the beast, and say thrice
over it, before it went
I put out this beef in the devil's name,
That mickle silver and good price came hame !"
briers might grow there" — that is, that this might be the only
fruit reserved to the owners of the land. When they wished to
take a cow's milk, they took tow or hemp, and twined or plaited
it the wrong way, in the devil's name. They then drew the
rope thus made in between the cow's two hind feet, and out be-
tween the fore feet, always in the name of the arch-fiend, and
milked the rope. To restore the cow its milk, they must cut
the rope in two. They had similar methods of taking and trans-
ferring the strength of people's ale, and of abstracting various
other things. Isobel Gowdie further stated that, when any one
of them fell into the hands of justice, she lost all her power,
which was thereupon shared among the rest of her covine, in
addition to that which they already possessed.
We are not informed what became of Isobel Gowdie but her
;
the I'oyalists, who were just as glad to seize upon any occasion
of hurting the cause of their opponents. Major Weir and his
sister were arrested, and both made what was called a full con-
fession, involving crimes of a degrading character. As these
were most of them vices which the king's party had long been
in the habit of ascribing to their religious adversaries, we are
perhaps justified in believing that they may have taken advantage
of their state of to suggest to them some of these self-accu-
mind
sations. Theyfound two or three witnesses to those parts of his
story which were most improbable. His sister declared that he
had a magical staff, which he always carried with him, and which
gave him eloquence in prayer. She said that once a person
called upon them at noonday with a fiery chariot, visible only to
themselves, and took them to visit a friend at Dalkeith, where
her brother received information, by supernatural means, of the
event of the battle of Worcester, and that she herself had inter-
course with the queen of the fairies, who assisted her in spinning
an unusual quantity of yarn.
MAJOR WEIR AND HIS SISTER.. 361
weep and lament for a poor old wretch like me but, alas few
; !
CHAPTER XXIX.
who had been drawn into these practices more unwillingly, and
v/ere very young, were condemned to be scourged with rods
upon their hands for three successive Sundays at the church-
door. The number of the children accused was about three
hundred.
It appears that the commissioners began by 1,aking the con-
fessions of the children, and then they confronted them with the
witches whom the children accused as their seducers. The latter,
to use the words of the authorized report, having " most of them
children with them, which they had either seduced or attempted
to seduce, some seven years of age, nay, from four to sixteen
years," now appeared before the commissioners. " Some of the
children complained lamentably of the misery and mischief they
were forced sometimes to suffer of the devil and the witches."
Being asked, whether they were sure, that they Avere at any
time carried away by the devil, they all replied in the affirma-
tive. " Hereupon the witches themselves were asked, whether
the confessions of those children were true, and admonished to
confess the truth, that they might turn away from the devil unto
the living God. At first, most of them did very stiffly, and with-
out shedding the least tear, defly it, though much against their
will and inclination. After this the children were examined
every one by themselves, to see whether their confessions did
agree or no, and the commissioners found that all of them, ex-
cept some very little ones, which could not tell all the circum-
THE WITCHES CONFESS. 365
fact, and begged pardon, adding that the devil, whom they
called Locyta, had stopped the mouths of some of them, so loath
was he to part with his prey, and had stopped the ears of others ;
and being now gone from them, they could no longer conceal
it, for they had now perceived his treachery."
way, and called the devil thrice, first with a still voice, the sec-
ond time somewhat louder, and the third time very loud, with
these words, '
Antecessor, come and carry us to Blockula.'
Whereupon immediately he used to appear but in different hab-
;
its; but for the most part we saw him in a gray coat and red and
blue stockings he had a red beard, a high-crowned hat, with
;
linen of divers colors wrapt about it, and long garters upon his
stockings. [It is very remarkable, says the report, that the devil
never appears to the witches with a sword by his side.] Then he
asked us, whether we would serve him with soul and body. If
we were content to do so, he set us on a beast which he had there
ready, and carried us over churches and high walls, and after
all we came to a green meadow where Blockula lies. We must
procure some scrapings of altars, and filings of church-clocks ;
away we go."
The witches of Mohra made similar statements and being
;
31*
366 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
laid something down in their place that was very like them but ;
one of them asserted that he did only take away " her strength,"
while her body lay still upon the ground, though sometimes he
took away her body also. They were then asked, how they
could go with their bodies through chimneys and unbroken panes
of glass ;to which they replied, that the devil did first remove
all that might hinder them in their flight, and so they had room
enough to go. Others, who were asked how they were able to
carry so many children with them, said that they came into the
chamber where the children lay asleep, and laid hold of them,
upon which they awoke they then asked them whether they
;
others, No, " yet they were all forced to go ;" they only gave the
children a shirt, and a coat, and doublet, which was either red
or blue, and so they set them upon a beast of the devil's provi-
ding, and then they rode away. The children confessed that
this was true, and some of them added, that because they had
very fine clothes put upon them, they were very willing to go.
Some of the children said that they concealed it from their pa-
rents, while others made no secret of their visits to Blockula.
" The witches declared, moreover, that till of late, they had nev-
er power to carry away children, but only this year and the last
and the devil did at that time force them to it that heretofore it was
;
them and whip them, if they did not procure him many children,
insomuch that they had no peace nor quiet for him. And where-
as that formerly one journey a week would serve their turn from
their own town to the place aforesaid, now
they were forced to run
to other towns and places and that they brought with
for children,
them some fifteen, some sixteen children every night."
The journey to Blockula was not always made with the same
kind of conveyance they commonly used men, beasts, even
;
the witches confessed, and added, that now they were exceed-
DESCRIPTION OF BLOCKULA. 367
ingly troubled and tortured in their minds for it." One tiling
was wanting to confirm this circumstance of their confession.
The marks of the whip could not be found on the persons of the
victims, except on one boy, who had some wounds and holes in
his back, that were given him with thorns but the witches said
;
they can not recover themselves the next day, and they often fall
into fits; the coming of which they know by an extraordinary
paleness that seizes on the children, and when a fit comes upon
them, they lean upon their mother's arms, who sits up with them,
sometimes all night, and when they observe the paleness, shake the
children, but to no purpose. They observe, further, that their chil-
dren's breasts grow cold at such times, and they take sometimes a
burning candle and stick it in their hair, which yet is not burned
by it. They swoon upon this paleness, which swoon lasteth some-
time half an hour, sometimes an hour, som.etimes two hours, and
when the children come to themselves again, they mourn and
lament, and groan most miserably, and beg exceedingly to be
eased. This the old men declared upon oath before the judges,
and called the inhabitants of the town to witness, as persons that
had most of them experience of the strong symptoms of their
children."
One Elfdale confessed that, happening accidental-
little girl in
ly to utter the name of Jesus, as she was carried away, she fell
suddenly upon the ground, and received a hurt in her side, which
the devil presently healed, and away he carried her.
A boy of the same district said that one day he was carried
away with his mistress and to perform the journey he took his
;
father's horse out of the meadow, where it was feeding, and upon
his return, she let the horse go into her own ground. The next
morning the boy's father sought for the horse, and not finding it
in its place, imagined that it was lost, till the boy told him the
whole story, and the father found the horse according to his child's
statement.
The account they gave of Blockula was, that it was situated
in a large meadow, like a plain sea, " wherein you can see no
end." The house they met at had a great gate painted with
many divers colors. Through this gate they Vi^ent into a little
meadow distinct from the other, and here they turned their ani-
mals to graze. When they had made use of men for their beasts
368 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
that the day of judgment was at hand, and set them to build a
great house of stone, promising that in his house he would pre-
serve them from God's wrath, and cause them to enjoy the great-
est delights and pleasures but while they Av^re hard at work, he
;
caused a great part of the work to fall down upon them, and some
of the witches were severely which made him laugh.
hurt,
Some demon like a drag-
of the children spoke of a very great
on, with fire round about him, and bound with an iron chain ;
and the devil told them that if they confessed anything, he would
set that great devil loose upon them, whereby all Sweden should
come into great danger. They said that the devil had a church
there like that in the village of Mohra. When he heard that the
commissioners were coming, he told the witches they should not
fear them, for he would certainly kill them all. And they con-
fessed some of them had attempted to murder the commissioners,
but had not been successful. Some of the children improved
upon these stories, and told of " a white angel, which used to
forbid them what the devil had bid them do, and told that these
things should not last long ; what had been done had been
permitted, because of the sin and wickedness of the people
and their parents and that the carrying away of the children
;
should be made manifest. And they added, that this white an-
gel would place himself sometimes at the door between the witches
and the children, and that when they came to Blockula he pulled
the children back, but the witches went on.
The witches of Sweden appear to have been less noxious than
those of most other countries, for, whatever they acknowledged
themselves, there seems to have been no evidence of mischief
done by them. They confessed that they were obliged to prom-
ise Satan that they would do all kind of mischief, and that the
devil taught them to milk, which was after this manner. They
used to slick a knife in the wall, and hang a kind of label on it,
which they drew and stroked and as long as this lasted, the
;
persons they had power over were miserably plagued, and the
beasts were milked that way, till sometimes they died of it. A
woman confessed that the devil gave her a wooden knife, where-
with, going into houses, she had power to kill anything she
touched with it yet there were few that would confess that they
;
had hurt any man or woman. Being asked whether they had
murdered any children, they confessed that they had indeed tor-
mented many, but did not know whether any of them died of
these plagues, although they said that the devil had showed them
several places where he had the power to do mischief. The
370 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
that she was the person that had thus disturbed him. The min-
ister of Mohra declared also, that one night one of these witches
came into his house, and did so violently take him by the throat,
that he thought he should have been choked, and awaking, he
saw the person that did it, but could not know her and that for
;
came they took away all sorts of victuals, such as butter, cheese,
milk, bacon, and all sorts of seeds, and carried them to the witch.
What the bird brought they kept for themselves, but what the
carrier brought, they took to Blockula, where the archfiend gave
them as much of it as he thought good. The carriers, they said,
filled themselves so full oftentimes, that they were forced to
disgorge it by the way, and what they thus rendered fell to the
ground, and is found in several gardens where coleworls grow,
and far from the houses of the witches. It was of a yellow color
like gold, and was called witches' butter.
" The lords commissioners," says the report, " were indeed
very earnest, and took great pains to persuade them to show some
of their tricks, but to no purpose for they did all unanimously
;
declare, that since they had confessed all, they found that all
their witchcraft was gone and the devil at this time appeared
;
very terrible, with claws on his hands and feet, with horns on
his head, and a long tail behind, and showed them a pit burning,
THE END OF THE INQUISY. 371
with a hand out but the devil did thrust the person down ao-ain
;
with an iron fork, and suggested to the witches that if they con-
tinued in their confession, he would deal with them in the same
manner."
Such are the details, as far as they can now be obtained, of
this extraordinaiy delusion, the only one of a similar kind that
Ave know to have occurred in the northern part of Europe du-
ring the " age of witchcraft." In other countries we can gen-
erally trace some particular cause which gave rise to great
persecutions of this kind, but here, as the story is told, we see
none, for it is hardly likely that such a strange series of accusa-
tions should have been the mere involuntary creation of a party
of little children. Suspicion is excited by the peculiar part which
the two clergymen of Elfdale and Mohra acted in it, that they
were not altogether strangers to the fabrication. They seem to
have been weak superstitious men, and perhaps they had been read-
ing the witchcraft books of the south till they imagined the country
round them to be overrun with these noxious beings. The pro-
ceedings at Mohra caused so much alarm throughout Sweden,
that prayers were ordered in all the churches for the delivery
from the snares of Satan, who was believed to have been let loose
in that kingdom. On a sudden a new edict of the king put a stop
to the whole process, and the matter was brought to a close rather
mysteriously. It is said that the witch prosecution was increas-
ing so much in intensity, that accusations began to be made
against people of higher class in society, and then a complaint
was made to the king, and they were stopped. Perhaps the two
clergymen themselves became alarmed, but one thing seems cer-
tain, that the moment the commission was revoked, and the per-
secution ceased, no more witches were heard of. It Avas thus
in most countries as long as the poor alone were the victims,
;
CHAPTER XXX.
SIR MATTHEW HALE AND CHIEF- JUSTICE HOLT.
afraid, but to throw it into the fire. And this deponent did ac-
cording to his direction, and at night, when she took down the
blanket with an intent to put her child therein, there fell out of
the same a great toad, which ran up and down the hearth, and
she having a young youth only with her in the house, desired
him to catch the toad and throw it into the fire, which the youth
did accordingly, and held it there with the tongs ; and as soon
as it was in the fire, it made a great and horrible noise, and after
a space there was a flashing in the fire like gunpowder, making
a noise like the discharge of a pistol, and thereupon the toad
was no more seen nor heard. It was asked by the court, if that
after the noise and flashing there was not the substance of the
toad to be seen to consume in the fire ; and it was answered by
the said Dorothy Durent, that after the flashing and noise, there
THE WITCHES OF LOWESTOFF. 373
was no more seen than if there had been none there. The next
day there came a young woman, a kinswoman of the said Amy,
and a neighbor of this deponent, and tokl this deponent that her
aunt (meaning the said Amy) was in a most lamentable condi-
tion, having her face all scorched with fire, and that she was
sitting alone in her house, in her smock, without any fire. And
thereupon this deponent went into the house of the said Amy
Duny to see her, and found her in the same condition as was
related to her, for her face, her legs, and thighs, which this de-
ponent saw, seemed very much scorched and burnt with fire, at
which deponent seemed much to wonder, and asked the
this
said Amy how she came into that sad condition and the said
;
Amy replied that she might thank her for it, for that she, this
deponent, was the cause thereof, but that she should live to see
some of her children dead, and she upon crutches. And this
deponent further saith, that after the burning of the said toad her
child recovered, and was well again, and was living at the time
of the assizes."
Subsequent to these new threats, another child of Dorothy
Durent was taken ill and died, and she herself was seized with a
lameness in her legs, in consequence of which she had remained
a cripple ever since.
The next offence laid to the charge of Amy Duny was the be-
witching of the children of Samuel Pacy, a merchant of Lowes-
tofl", who " carried himself with much soberness during the
trial." This man deposed " that his younger daughter, Debo-
rah, npon Thursday the tenth of October last, was suddenly
taken with a lameness in her legs, so that she could not stand,
neither had she any strength in her limbs to support her, and so
she continued until the seventeenth day of the same month, which
day being fair and simshiny, the child desired to be carried on
the east part of the house, to be set upon the bank which look-
eth upon the sea; and while she was sitting there, Amy Duny
came to this deponent's to buy some herrings, but being denied,
she went away discontented, and presently returned again, and
was denied, and likewise the third time, and was denied as at
first ; and at her last going aw^ay, she went away grumbling, but
what she said was not perfectly understood. But at the very
same instant of time the said child was taken with most violent
fits, feeling most extreme pain in her stomach, like the pricking
til the thirtieth of the same month. Curing this time this de-
ponent sent for one Dr. Feavor, a doclor of physic, to take his
advice concerning his child's distemper. The doctor being
come, he saw the child in those fits, but could not conjecture
(as he then told this deponent, and afterward he affirmed in open
court at this trial) what might be the cause of the child's atHic-
tion. And this deponent further saith, that by reason of the cir-
cumstances aforesaid, and in regard Amy Duny is a woman of
an ill fame, and commonly reported to be a witch and a sorcer-
ess, and for that the said child in her fits would cry out of Amy
Duny as the cause of her malady, and that she did affright her
with apparitions of her person (as the child in the interval of
her fits related), he, this deponent, did suspect the said Amy
Duny for a witch, and charged her with the injury and wrong-
to his child, and caused her to be set in the stocks on the twen-
ty-eighth of the same October ; and during the time of her con-
tinuance there, one Alice Letteridge and Jane Buxton demanded
of her (as they also affirmed in court upon their oaths) what
should be the reason of Mr. Pacy's child's distemper, telling her
that she was suspected to be the cause thereof. She replied,
' xMr. Pacy keeps a great stir about his child, but let him stay
until he hath done as much by his children as I have done by
mine.' And being further examined what she had done to her
children, she answered that she had been fain to open her child's
mouth with a tap to give it victuals. And the said deponent
further deposeth, that within two days after speaking of the said
words, being the thirtieth of October, his eldest daughter Eliza-
beth fell into extreme fits, inasmuch that they could not open
her mouth to give her broth to preserve her life without the help
of a tap, which they were enforced to use ; and the younger
child was in like manner afflicted, so that they used the same
also for her relief."
Thechildren were now continually visited with fits, similar
to other supposed sufferers from witchcraft, including the vom-
iting of crooked pins, nails, &c., aud the spasmodic trances, in
the latter of which they were in the habit of crying out against
various women of ill-repute in the town, who, they said, were
present tormenting them, but more especially against Amy Duny
and the other prisoner, whose name was Rose Cullender. The
children declared that these two women appeared to them some-
times in the act of spinning, and at other times in a variety of
postures, threatening and mocking them. A friend of the family
appeared in court as an independent witness, and deposed, that
ROSE CULLENDER. 375
in her presence " the children would in their fits cry out. against
Rose Cullender and Amy Duny, afnrming that they saw them ;
and they threatened to torment them ten times more if they com-
plained of thera. At some times the children (only) would see
things run up and down the house in the appearance of mice ;
and one of them suddenly snapped one with the tongs, and threw
it into the fire, and it screeched out like a bat. At another
time, the younger child being out of her fits, went out of doors
to take a little fresh air, and presently a little thing like a bee
flew upon her face, and would have gone into her mouth, where-
upon the child ran in all haste to the door to get into the house
again, shrieking out in a most terrible manner; whereupon this
deponent made haste to come to her, but before she could get to
her, the child fell into her swooning fit, and at last, with much
pain and straining herself, she vomited up a twopenny nail with
a broad head and after that the child had raised up the nail she
;
declared the same, she fell again into violent fits, and afterward
raised several pins. At another time the said elder child de-
clared unto this deponent, and sitting by the fire suddenly started
up and said she saw a mouse, and she crept under the table
looking after it, and at length she put something in her apron,
saying she had caught it and immediately she ran to the fire
;
and threw it in, and there did appear upon it to this deponent,
like the flashing of gunpowder, though she confessed she saw
nothing in the child's hands."
Another person bewitched was a servant-girl named Susan
Chandler, whose mother, besides deposing to the discovery of
Satan's marks on the body of one of the witches, said, " that her
said daughter being of the age of eighteen years, was then in
service in the said town, aud rising up early the next morning
to wash, this Rose Cullender appeared to her, and took her by
the hand, whereat she was much affrighted, and went forthwith
to her mother (being in the same town), and acquainted her with
what she had seen but being extremely terrified, she fell ex-
;
treme sick, much grieved at her stomach, and that night, after
being in bed with another young woman, she suddenly shrieked
out, and fell into such extreme fits as if she were distracted, cry-
376 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
ing against Rose Cullender, saying she would come to bed to
her. She continued in this manner beating and wearing herself,
insomuch that this deponent was glad to get help to attend her.
In her intervals she would declare that sometimes she saw Rose
Cullender alone, at another time with a great dog with her she ;
stricken with blindness, and at another time she was dumb, and
so she appeared to be in court when the trial of the prisoners
was, for she was not able to speak her knowledge but being
;
brought into court at the trial, she suddenly fell into her fits, and
being carried out of the court again, within the space of half an
hour she came to herself and recovered her speech, and there-
upon was immediately brought into the court, and asked by the
court whether she was in condition to take an oath, and to give
evidence. She said she could. But when she was sworn, and
asked what she could say against either of the prisoners, before
she could make any answer she fell into her fits, shrieking out in
a miserable manner, crying, Burn her, burn her !' which was
'
was conveyed from the bar and brought to the maid they put an
;
apron before her eyes, and then one other person touched her
hand, vi^hich produced the same effect as the touch of the witch
did in the court. Whereupon the gentlemen returned, openly
protesting tlip^t they did believe the whole transaction of this busi-
ness was a mere imposture. This put the court and all persons
into a stand ; but at length Mr. Pacy did declare, that possibly
the maid might be deceived by a suspicion that the witch touched
her when she did not. For he had observed divers times, that
although they could not speak, but were deprived of the use of
their tongues and limbs, that their understandings were perfect,
for that they have related divers things which have been when
they were in their fits, after they were recovered out of them."
Disappointed in this experiment, the accusers now brought
forward some other evidence to prove the character of the pris-
oners, the principal of which was " one John Soam, of Lowe-
stoff, yeoman, a sufficient person," who deposed, " That not long
since, in harvest-time, he had three carts which brought home
his harvest, and as they were going into the field to load, one of
the carts wrenched the window of Rose Cullender's house where-
upon she came out in a great rage and threatened this deponent
for doing that wrong, and so they passed along into the fields
and loaded all the three carts, the other two carts returned safe
home, and back again, twice loaded that day afterward but as ;
,to this cart which touched Rose Cullender's house, after it was
loaded it was overturned twice or thrice that day and after that
;
they had loaded it again this second or third time, as they brought
32*
378 SORCE'RY AND MAGIC.
it through the gate which leadeth out of the field into the town,
the cart stuck so fast in the gatestead, that they could not possi-
bly get it through, but were enforced to cut down the post of the
gate to make the cart pass through, although they could not per-
ceive that the cart did of either side touch the gate-post. And
this deponent further said, that after they had got it through the
gateway, they did with much difficulty get it home into the yard ;
but for all that they could do, they could not get the cart near
into the place where they should unload the
corn, but were fain
to unload it distance from the place
at a great and when they
;
they were fain to desist, and leave it until the next morning, and
then they unloaded it without any difficulty at all. Robert Sher-
ringham also deposeth a,gainst Rose Cullender, that about two
years since, passing along the street with his cart and horses,
the axle-tree of his cart touched her house, and broke down some
part of it, at which she was very much displeased, threatening
him that his horses should suffer for it, and so it happened, for
all those horses, being four in number, died within a short time
after ;since that time he hath had great losses by sudden dying
of his other cattle so soon as his sows pigged, the pigs would
;
leap and caper, and immediately fall down and die. Also, not
long after, he was taken with a lameness in his limbs that he
could neither go nor stand for some days. After all this, he was
very much vexed with a great number of lice of an extraordina-
ry bigness, and although he many times shifted himself, yet he
v/as not anything the better, but would swarm again with them ;
said Temperance made answer, that she had no wax nor clay,
but confessed that she had only a piece of leather which she
had pricked nine times." Temperance Lloyd was searched,
and they found on her body two " teats," which she confessed
had been sucked by " the black man ;" and one of the searchers,
who was an acquaintance of the accused, declared that on the
morning of the preceding Thursday, " she, this informant, did
see something in the shape of a magpie to come at the chamber
window where the said Grace Thomas did lodge. Upon which
this informant did demand of the said Temperance Lloyd
whether she did know of any bird to come and flutter, at the
said window ;unto which question the said Temperance did
then say that it was the black man in the shape of the bird."
Having obtained thusmuch of foundation to build upon, the ac-
count of the black man was soon amplified, and " beimg demand-
ed of what stature the said black man was," she was prevailed
upon to describe him as being " about the length of her arm ;
and that his eyes were very big and that he hopped or leaped
;
upon this evidence, and more of the same description, the three
women were convicted by the jury, and they were all hanged at
Exeter. When these wretched women were on the scaffold,
they were again tormented with questions, and returned such
answers as might be expected from persons in a condition that
they hardly knew what they were asked or what they said in
reply. Among other things. Temperance Lloyd was asked,
" How did you come in to hurt Mrs. Grace Thomas ? did you
pass through the keyhole of the door, or was the door open 1
" Temp. The devil did lead me up-stairs, and the door was
open and this is all the hurt I did.
;
" Q. Why
had you not called upon God ?
'•
He would not let me do it.
Temp.
" Q. You say you never hurt ships nor boats did you never —
ride over an arm of the sea on a cow 1
" Temp. No, no, master, 'twas she" [meaning Susan).
Another interrogator, equally unfeeling, closed the scene with
asking the victim if she had never seen the devil but once.
" Temp. Yes, once before I was going for brooms, and he
;
all the instances wliicli had occiirred and which had led to such
a fearful destruction of human life, were founded only in delib-
erate imposture, in statements made Tinder fear of torture, in
mental delusion, or in natural phenomena which were easily
explained by science and reason without the necessity of calling
in supernatural causes.
Books like these were chiefly calculated to influence the edu-
cated part of society, and we soon perceive their efl^ects in the
course of justice. After the revolution of 'eighty-eight, there
seems to have been a strong tendency to renew the persecution
against witches, but Sir Matthew Hale had been succeeded by a
judge of no less weight and talent, who was in this respect at least
—
more enlightened the lord-chief-justice Holt. Three women
were thrown into prison in 1691 for bewitching a person near
Frome, in Somersetshire, of whom one died before she was
brought to trial but the other two, having Chief- Justice Holt for
;
their judge, were acquitted. This case seems to have been the
first check put upon the courts of law and the populace, disap-
;
her, such as spoiling of wort, and hurting cattle, and it Avas sta-
ted that several persons upon their death-beds had complained
that she killed them. It was further deposed, that her landlord,
Thomas Fennel, wishing to force her out of a house she had of
him, took away the door, and left her without one. Some time
after, she said to him as he passed by the door, " Go thy way,
thy nose shall lie upward in the churchyard before Saturday
next.". On the Monday following, we are assured he sickened,
334 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
and died on Tuesday, and was buried within the week, accord-
ing to her word. To confirm this, it was added by another wit-
ness, that a doctor whom they had consulted about an afflicted
person, when Mother Munnings was mentioned, said she was a
dangerous woman, for she could " touch the line of life." In her
indictment, she was charged with having an imp like a pole-cat
and one witness deposed, that coming from the alehouse about
nine at night, he looked in at her window, and saw her take out
of her baslcet two imps, one black the other white. It was also
deposed, that one Sarah Wager, after a quarrel with this woman,
was taken dumb and lame, and was in that condition at home at
the time of the trial. Many other such things were sworn, but
in consequence of the charge from the judge, the jury brought
her in not guilty. Dr. Hutchinson, who obtained the notes of this
trial through Chief- Justice Holt himself, adds on this statement
" Upon particular inquiry of several in or near the town, I find
most are satisfied that it was a very right judgment. She lived
about two years after, without doing any known harm to anybody,
and died declaring her innocence. Her landlord was a consump-
tive spent man, and the words not exactly as they swore them,
and the whole thing seventeen years before. For by a certificate
from the register, I find he was buried June 20, 1667. The
white imp is believed to have been a lock of wool, taken out of her
basket to spin, and its shadow it is supposed was the black one."
The same year, a woman of the name of Margaret Elmore
was tried at Ipswich before the lord-chief-justice Holt. She was
accused of having bewitched one Mrs. Rudge of that town, who
was three years in a languishing condition, because, as it was
alleged, Mr. Rudge, the husband of the afflicted person, had re-
fused to let her a house. Some witnesses said that Mrs. Rudge
was better upon the confinement of the woman, and worse again
when her chains were off". Other witnesses gave an account,
that her grandmother and her aunt had formerly been hanged for
witches, and that her grandmother had said she had eight or nine
imps, and that she had given two or three imps a piece to her
children. This grave accusation was considered to be fully con-
firmed, when a midwife who had searched Margaret Elmore's
grandmother, who had been hanged, said, this woman had plain-
er marks than she. Others deposed to their being covered with
lice after quarrels with her. But notwithstanding these deposi-
tions, the jury brought her in not guilty,
" and," says Dr. Hutch-
inson, " though I have made particular inquiry, I do not hear of
any ill consequence."
SATAN IN NEV/ ENGLAND. "
385
her body, and go into their bellies the mother of the children
;
said, she did five or six times, and laughed and said, Bess Horner
held her up. This poor woman had something like a nipple on
her shoulder, which the children said was sucked by a toad.
Many other strange things were asserted by different witnesses
but the jury brought her m not guilty, " and no inconvenience
;
CHAPTER XXXL
THE DOIXGS OF SATAN IN NEW ENGLAND.
.
As Satan found that, beaten by the force of public opinion, he
was losing his hold on the mother-country, he seemed resolved
to fix a firmergrasp upon her distant colonies, and the new world
presented moment a scene v.-hich exemplifies the horrors
at this
and the absurdities of the witchcraft-persecutions more than any-
thing that had occurred in the old world.
The colony of Massachusetts bay, in New England, was essen-
tially a religious—a puritanical settlement. One of the congrega-
tions of the English presbyterians who sought refuge in Holland
from the intolerance of James I., finding their position there un-
easy, came to the resolution of establishing themselves in the
wilds of North jVmerica, where they could worship the Almighty
after their owa convictions, unseen and untroubled by those who
S3
386 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
great sensation, and the crime was not heard of again for many
years. At length, in the year 1688, a case occurred at Boston,
which struck the colonists with no little dismay. A niLJson of
that town, named John Goodwin, who had six children, was in
the habit of employing as a washerwoman one of his neighbors
named Glover, an Irishwoman and a p?)pist, neither of ihem any
great recommendation in the state of New England. About the
midsummer of the year last-mentioned, some linen having beer
missed, Goodwin's wife accused the woman of theft, on whicH
3S8 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
she became angry and abusive, and used cross language to one
of the children, a little girl. Immediately afterward, this girl
was seized with fits and strange afflictions, which soon commu-
nicated themselves to three of her sisters. The Irishwoman fell
under suspicion, and was arrested, and in her examination she
answered so incoherently, and with such a strange mixture of
Irishand broken English, that she was soon brought in guilty,
and the solemnity of the examination and execution made a deep
impression on the minds of the people of Boston.
There were in that town two ministers (father and son), who,
for many reasons, held a distinguished place among the clergy
of NewEngland, and their opinions were looked up to with the
utmost respect. These were Increase and Cotton Mather, the
first principal, and the second a fellow of Harvard college.
These men seem to have studied deeply the doctrines on the
subject of witchcraft which had so long been held in Europe,
and to have been fully convinced of their truth. Cotton Mather
was called in to witness the afflictions with which Goodwin's
children were visited, and not content with what he saw there,
he took the girl whose visitations seemed most extraordinary to
his own home, that he might examine her more leisurely, and he
has left us a printed account of his observations. It appears
l;hat some of the stories of European v/itchcraft had been im-
pressed on her mind, for when in her fits she believed that the
witches came for her with a horse on v/hich she rode to their
meetings. Sometimes, in the presence of a number of persons,
she would suddenly fall into a sort of trance, and then she would
jump into a chair, and placing herself in a riding posture, move
as if she were successively ambling, trotting, and gallopping.
At the same time she would talk with invisible company, that
seemed to go with her, and she would listen to their answers.
After continuing in this way two or three minutes, she seemed
to think herself at a meeting of the witches, a great distance
from the house where she was sitting then she would return
;
Several private fasts were now held in the house of Mr. Paris,
and a public fast was directed throughout the colony, to avert
God's wrath.
Being noticed, the children and others afflicted
visited and
proceeded other denunciations, and other persons exhibited
to
similar fits and contortions. At first they ventured only on ac-
cusing poor women, who were of ill-repute in the place, and
they talked of a black man who urged them to sign a book,
which they said was red, very thick, and about a cubit long.
They were gradually encouraged to accuse persons of a more
respectable position in life, and among the first of these were
Goodwife Cory and Goodwife Nurse, members of the churches
at Salem village and Salem town. On the 21st of March Good-
wife Cory was subjected to a solemn examination in the meet-
ing-house of the village. Ten afflicted persons accused her of
tormenting them. Thej^ said that in their fits they saw her like-
ness coming with a book for them to sign. She earnestly as-
serted her innocence, and represented that they were poor dis-
tracted creatures, who knew not what thej^ were saying. Upon
this they declared, that " the black man whispered to her in her
ear now (while she was upon examinatioi\), and that she had a
yellow bird, that did use .to suck between her fingers, and that
the said bird did suck now in the assembly.* Order being given
to look in that place to see if there were any sign, the girl that
pretended to see it said that it was too late now, for she had re-
moved a pin, and put it on her head. It was upon search found
that a pin was there sticking upright. When the accused had
any motion of her body, hands, or mouth, the accusers would cry
out as when she bit her lip, they would cry out of being bitten
;
;
if she grasped one hand with the other, they would cry out of
being pinched by her, and would produce marks so of the other ;
— —
* These yellow birds perhaps canaries form a peculiar feature of witchcraft in
New Eiigknd. '" In sei'mmi tiine. when Goorlwife C was present in the meeting-
house, Abigail WilliRms rfiU (1 oiii, 'Look where Goofl w ife C. sits on tlie beam
sui'kling her yellow binl betwixt lier fiiigers!' Anne Pitman, another girl afflict-
ed, said, Tliere was a yellow bird sat on my hat as it hnng on tlie pin in the pul-
'
pit ;' but those that -were by restrained her from speaking loud about it." In-
crease Mather's "Further Account of the New England Witches/' p. 2.
SALEM WITCHES. 391
stamp and cry out of pain there. After the hearing, the said
Cory was committed to Salem prison, and then their crying out
of her abated."
On the 24th of March, Goodvvife Nurse was suddenly exam-
ined before the ministers and magistrates in the meetinghouse,
Avith the same resuh. A child between four and five years old
was now also committed. The accusers said that this child
came invisibly, and bit them, and they would show the marks
of small teeth on their arras to corroborate the statement and ;
"when the child cast its eye upon them, they immediatel}^ cried
out that they were in torment.
The number of accusers and accused now incre-ased fast, and
some of the latter, as the only means of saving themselves, made
confessions, and accused others. They all spoke of a black man,
and some described him as resembling an Indian, a circum-
stance we can easily understand. We are told by one of the
historians of these events of a converted Indian, who was a zeal-
ous preacher of the gospel among his countrymen ; " being a lit-
tle before he died at worL in the wood making of tar, there ap-
peared unto him a black man, of a terrible aspect and more than
human dimensions, threatening bitterly to kill him, if he would
not promise to leave oft preaching to his countrymen." This is
said to have occurred just before the events I am now relating
the black man of the confessions was of ordinary stature, but he
made no secret of his design to destroy the Christian settlement,
—
and he held meetings of his converts those who had signed his
—
book where they had mock ceremonies and participated in a
mock sacrament. One of the accused, who saved himself by
confessing, told how the devil appeared " in the shape of a black
man, in the evening, to set my name to his book, as I have
ov/ned to my shame he told me that I should not want, so do-
;
over all on a stick, and never was present at any other meeting."
—
-
" The design was to destroy Salem village, and to begin at
the minister's house, and to destroy the churches of God, and to
set up Satan's kingdom, and then all will be well."
The ministers and magistrates went on with their fastings and
examinings, as the number of persons accused increased, until,
on the 11th of April, there was a grand public hearing at Salem
before six magistrates and several ministers. One Goodwife
392 SOECERY AND MAGIC.
that I might hold one of her hands, but it was denied me. Then
she desired me to wipe the tOLWs from her eyes and the sweat
from her face, v.diich I did. Then she desired she might lean
herself on me, saying she should faint. Justice Halhorn replied,
she had strength enough to torment those persons, and she should
have strength enough to stand. I speaking something against
their cruel proceedings, they commanded me to be silent, or else
I should be turned out of the room. The Indian before men-
tioned was also brought in to be one of her accusers ; being
come in, he now (when before the justices) fell down and tum-
bled about like a hog, but said nothing. The justice asked the
girls, who afflicted the Indian. They answered, she' (meaning
'
my wife), and now lay upon him the justices ordered her to
;
touch him, in order to his cure, but her head must be turned an-
other way, lest instead of curing she should make him worse by
her looking on him, her hand being guided to take hold of his ;
but the Indian took hold on her hand, and pulled her down on the
floor, in a barbarous manner; then his hand was taken off, and
her hand put on his, and the cure was quickly wrought."
THE EXECUTIONS COMMENCE. 393
held him, unable to help himself, until near day. He told Bishop
of this but she denied it, and threatened him very much.
;
Quickly after this, being at home on a Lord's day, with the doors
shut about him, he saw a black pig approach him at which he ;
now going to fly at him whereat he cried out, The whole ar-
;
'
her. The people saw her not, but there being a bucket at the
left hand of the door, there was a drop of blood found upon it,
and several more drops of bk)od upon the snow newly-fallen
abroad. There was likewise the print of her two feet just v/ith-
out the threshold, but no more sign of any footing further on.
At another time this deponent was desired by the prisoner to
come unto a husking of corn at her house, and she said if he did
not come it were better that he did. He went not but the night
;
out, and he saw no more of thera. About this time there was a
rumor about the town that Martin had a broken head, but the de-
ponent could say nothing to that." Another neighbor, whose
name was John Kembal, stated that, " Being desirous to furnish
himself with a dog, he applied himself to buy one of this Mar-
tin, who had a bitch with whelps in her house. But she not let-
ting him have his choice, he said he would apply himself then
at one Blezdel's. Having marked a puppy which he liked at
Blezdel's,he met George Martin, the husband of the prisoner,
going by, who asked hini whether he would not have one of his
wife's puppies, and he answered, no. The same day, one Ed-
ward Elliot, being at Martin's house, heard George Martin relate
where this Kembal had been, and what he had said. Whereup-
on Susanna Martin replied, 'If I live I'll give him puppies
enough.' Within a few days after this, Kembal coming out of
the woods, there arose a little black cloud in the northwest, and
Kembal immediately felt a force upon him, which made him not
39G SORCERY AND MAGIC.
able to avoid running upon stumps of trees that were before him,
albeit he had a broad plain cart-way before him but though he ;
had his axe also on his shoulder to endanger him in his falls, he
could not forbear going out of his way to tumble over them.
When he came below the meetinghouse, there appeared to him
a thing like a puppy, of a darkish color, and it shot back-
little
ward and forward between his legs. He had the courage to use
all possible endeavors of cutting it with his axe, but he could not
hil it; the puppy gave a jump from him, and went, as to him it
seemed, into the ground. Going a little further there appeared un-
to him a black puppy, somewhat bigger than the first, but as black
as a coal. Its motions were quicker than those of his axe it ;
flew at his belly, and away; then at his throat; so over his
shoulder one vvay, and then over his shoulder another way. His
heart now began to faihhim, and he thought the dog would have
tore his throat out; but he recovered himself, and called upon
God in his distress, and naming the name of Jesus Christ, it van-
ished away at once." Another witness, John Pressy, declared
" that beingoneeveniogveryunaccountablybewildered, near afieid
of Martin's, and several times, as one under an enchantment, re-
turning to the place he had left, at length he saw a marvellous
light, about the bigness of a half-bushel, near two rods out of the
way. He
gave it near forty blows, and felt it a palpable sub-
stance. But going from it, his heels were struck up, and he was
laid with his back on the ground, sliding, as he thought, into a
pit, whence he recovered by taking hold on the bush although ;
changed no words with one another. The next day it was upon
inquiry understood that Martin was in a miserable condition by
pains and hurls that vi^ere upon her."
These tales have somewhat of novelty, Jbut others were deci-
dedly adopted from the witch trials in Europe, and they even
went so far as to make the pretended sufferers, when imder the
influence of the " spirit," talk languages which they had never
learned, such as Latin, and Greek, and even Hebrew, although
it appeared that even Satan himself would not condescend to talk
our indefatigable Elliot! He hires a native to teach him this exotic laiiiiUdKe, nn<'l,
with a laborious care and skill reduces it into a grammar, which idterwaid lie pub-
lished. There is a letter or two of our alphabet which the Indians never had in
THE LANGUAGE OF THE INDIANS. 397
or, indeed, an)^ fires in the chambers, yet presently the scalds
v.'ere seen plainly by everybody on the mouths of the complainers,
and not only the smell, but the smoke, of the burning sensibly
filled the chambers. Once more, the miserable exclaimed ex-
tremely of branding-irons heating at the fire on the hearth to
mark them now, though the standers-by could see no irons, yet
;
they could see distinctly the print of them in the ashes, and
theirs ; if their alphabet be short, I am sure the words composed of it are long
but
euoagh to tire the patience of any scholar in the world tiiey are sexquiped/dia
;
verba, of which their lingo is composed one would ihuik they had been growing
;
ever since Babel unto tlie d mensious to which they are now extended. For in-
stance, if myreader will count how many hlters tliere in ihis one word, N-immat-
rhelcodtaatamoongavjunnoiiash, when he has dons, for his reward, I'll tell him it
signifies no more in English than '(;ur lust^;' and if I were to translate our Icjves,''
fiLid in all ihislangnaee, the least sfH. iiy to. or derivaii;;n f"om, any European speech
that; we are acqnainled with." He then adds ' 1 know not what thoaghts it w^ill
:
produce in my reader when I inform hiiii, ihal O'jce finding that the daemons in a
posses3=d young woman, unders nod th } Latin, and Greek, and Hebrew 1 u.guages,
my curiosity led me to make trial of this Indian language, and the dajmons did seem-
—
as if Ihey did not uadeisiandit." IvIathkhs M.iGNALiA, book iii p. 19a. ,
34
393 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
smell them too, as they were carried by the unseen furies unto the
poor creatures for whom they were intended and those poor crea-
;
tures were thereupon so stigmatized with them, that they will bear
the marks of tliem to their dying day. Nor are these the tenth
part of the prodigies that fell out among the inhabitants of New
England. Flashy people may burlesque these things, but when
hundreds of the most sober people in a country, where they have
as much mother-wit certainly as the rest of mankind, know them
to be true, nothing but the absurd and froward spirit of Saddu-
cism can question them. I have not yet mentioned so much as
one thing that will not be justified, if it be required, by the oaths
of more considerate persons than any that can ridicule these odd
phenomena."
The moment the executions commenced, the evil, instead of
stopping, spread wider and wider. The accused were multiplied
in proportion to the accusers, and no one was for one moment
sure that the next moment he might not be denounced and or-
dered for trial, which was almost equivalent to being convicted.
For so fully convinced were magistrates and ministers that Satan
was in the midst of them, using human instruments to effect his
purposes, that the slightest evidence was received with the utmost
eagerness. The court met again on the 30th of June, and five
more were condemned, who were all executed on the 19ihof July.
Among these were Sarah Good and Rebecca Nurse, the two
" goodwives" above mentioned. " On the trial of Sarah Good,
one of the afflicted fell in a fit, and after coming out of it, she
cried out of the prisoner for stabbing her in the hand with a
knife, and that she had broken the knife in stabbing of^h'er; ac-
cordingly a piece of the blade of a knife was found about her.
Immediately information being given to the court, a young man
was called, who produced a haft and part of the blade, which the
court having viewed and compared, saw it to be the same. And
upon inquiry, the young man affirmed that yesterday he hap-
pened to break that knife, and that he cast away the upper part,
this afflicted person being then present. The young man was
dismissed, and she was bidden by the court not to tell lies and ;
was improved afler (as she had been before) to give evidence
against the prisoner." As to Goodwife Nurse, the jury at first
brought her in not guilty on which the accusers and the afflicted
;
cart which conveyed them was upset, and the " afflicted'" declared
that the devil accompanied the cart, and that he overthrew it in
order to retard their punishment.
Nineteen individuals had now been hanged, in addition to the
man who was pressed to death, and the maoistrates themselves
seem to have been anxious to find some justification for their con-
duct. Thereupon Cotton Mather at the express desire of the
governor, prepared for the press reports of seven of the trials,
400 SORCERY AND MAG[C.
were sent from several places to fetch those accusers who had
the spectral sight, that they might thereby tell who afHicted those
that v/ere any way ill. When these came into any place where
such were, usually they fell into a lit; after which, being asked
who was it that afflicted the person, they would for the most part
name one who they said sat on the head and another that sat on
the lower part of the afflicted. More than fifty people of Aiido-
RELEASE OF WITCHES. 401
giveness, first of God, for Christ's sake, lor this our error and
;
and aright, by the living sufferers, as being then under the power
of a strong and general delusion, utterly unacquainted with, and
not experienced in, matters of that nature." The delusion was
further exposed by voluntary confessions of those who had pre-
viously confessed themselves witches, which they declared they
had done only to save their lives. The following declaration,
signed by several of the women who had acted as accusers, no
doubt acquaints us with the secret of many of the witch-delusions
in England. "Joseph Ballard of Andover's wife being sick,"
say they, " he either from himself, or the advice of others, fetched
tvv^o of the persons called the afflicted persons from Salem vil-
were so, and our understanding, and our reason, and our faculties,
being almost gone, we were not capable of judging of our con-
dition; as also the hard measures they used with us rendered us
incapable of making any defence, but we said an3'thing and ev-
erything they desired, and most of what we said was, in fact,
but a consenting to what they said."
404 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
CHAPTER XXXII.
CONCLUSION.
crimes in whicli they and many others were involved had usual-
ly been punished by burning, a tribunal Avas appointed to sit at
the arsenal, under the title of a chamhre ardente. Although few
fires were eventually lit by the judgments of this court, a great
number of persons were more or less compromised, and many of
them belonging to the highest classes of society. Among them
were two nieces of Cardinal Mazarin the countess of Soissons,
;
who was cited before this tribunal, was so far implicated, that
she was obliged to leave Paris and retire to Brussels. Most of
these personages were probably led to consult the conjurers more
by curiosity than Irom any other motive, and the whole matter
was made a subject of ridicule and raillery in the fashionable
world. When the duchess of Bouillon, who was one of the la-
dies implicated in this afiair, Avas examined before the chamhre
ardente, one of the judges, La Rejmie, who was not remarkable
for beauty or politeness, asked her if she had seen the devil, and
what he was like she replied, " Yes, I see him novv^ he is fort
; ;
cordingly took- some away from this informant. And further, this
informant saith, that on the 29th of January last, when this in-
formant was thrashing in the barn of his master, John Chapman,
an old womanin a riding-hood or cloak, he knows not which,
came barn-door, and asked him for a pennyworth of straw
to the ;
he told her he could give her none, and she went away mutter-
ing. And this informant saith, that after the woman was gone
he was not able to work, but ran out of the barn as far as a place
called Munder's hill (which was above three miles from Wal-
kern), and asked at a house there for a pennyv/orth of straw, and
they refused to give him any; he went further to some dur\g-
heaps, and took some straw thence, and pulled off" his shirt, and
brought it home in his shirt; he knows not what moved him to
this, but says he was forced to it he knows not how." Another
witness declared that he saw Matthew Gilson returning with the
straw in his shirt that he moved along at a great pace, and that
;
ing before, and had just had it set. It appears that the supposed
witch resolved to talie vengeance on this poor girl for the olience
committed by her master. Jane Wenham and Chapman were
gone, and Mr. Gardiner had entered the parlor to his wife, ac-
companied by a neighbor named Bragge. These three persons
deposed at the subsequent trial, that " Mr Gardiner had not been
in the parlor with his wife and Mr. Bragge above six or seven
minutes at most since he left Anne Thorn sitting by the fire,
when he heard a strange yelling noise in the kitchen, and when
he went out and found this Anne Thorne stripped to her shirt
sleeves, howling and wringing her hands in a dismal manner, and
speechless, he calling out, Mrs. Gardiner and Mr. Bragge came
immediately to him. Mrs. Gardiner seeing her servant in that
sad condition, asked her what was the matter with her. She
not beiiig able to speak, pointed earnestly at a bundle which lay
at her feet; which Mrs. Gardiner took up and unpinned, and
found it to be the girl's gown and apron, and a parcel of oaken
twigs with dead leaves wrapped up therein. As soon as this bun-
dle was opened, Anne Thorn began to speak, crying out, 'I'm
ruined and undone ;' and after she had a little recovered herself,
gave the following relation of what had befallen her. She said
when she was left alone she found a strange roaming in her
hand (I use her own expressions) her mind ran upon Jane Wen-
^
ham, and she thought she must run some whither that according-
;
ly she ran up the close, but looked back several times at the
house, thinking she should never see it more ; that she climbed
over a five-bar gate, and ran along the highway up a hill that ;
there she met two of John Chapman's men, one of whom took
hold of her hand, saying, she should go with them but she was
;
forced away from them, not being able to speak, either to them,
or to one Daniel Chapman, whom, she said, she met on horse-
back, and would fain have spoken to him, but could not; then
she made her way toward Cromer, as far as a place called Hock-
ney lane, where she looked behind her, and saw a little old wo-
man muffled in a riding-hood, who asked her whither she was
going. She answered, to Cromer to fetch some sticks to make
her a fire the old woman told her there were now no sticks at
;
Cromer, and bade her go to that oak-tree, and pluck some thence,
which she did, and laid them upon the ground. The old woman
bade her pull off her gown and apron, and wrap the sticks in
them, and asked her w-hether she had e'er a pin. Upon her an-
swering she had none, the old Vvroraan gave her a large crooked
pin, bade her pin up her bundle, and then vanished away ; after
ANNE THORNE'S ADVENTURES. 409
which she ran home with her- bundle of sticks, and sat down in
the kitchen stripped, as Mr. Gardiner found her. This is the
substance of what she related, upon which Mrs. Gardiner cried
out,'
The girl has been in the same condition with Chapman's
man but we will burn the witch ;' alluding to a received notion,
;
and threw them into the fire. Immediately, in the instant, that
the sticks were flaming, Jane Wenham came into the room, and
inquired for Elizabeth, the mother of Anne Thorne, saying she
had an errand to do to her from Ardley Bury (Sir Henry Chaun-
cey's house), to wit, that she must go thither to wash the next
day. Now this Mother Thorne had been in the house all the time
that Jane Wenham was there with John Chapman, and heard
nothing of it, and was then gone home. Mrs. Gardiner bad Jane
Wenham go to Elizabeth Thorne, and tell her there was work
enough for her there on which she departed. And upon in-
;
quiry made afterward, it was found that she never was ordered
to deliver any such errand from Ardley Bury."
Here was an excellent groundwork for an accusation of witch-
craft. Chapman's two men, and the horseman, deposed to meet-
ing Anne Thorne on the road, as she described; and others of
Jane Wenham's enemies testified that other people had been be-
witched by her. All received encouragement from the readiness
-
tolerant party, with their hero Sacheverell, had gained the upper
hand, and they seemed not unwilling to recall into force even the
old degrading belief in witchcraft, if they could make it an in-
strument for effecting their purposes. But the most important
result of this trial, and the controversy to which it gave rise, was
the publication, two or three years afterward, of the " Historical
Essay concerning Witchcraft," by the king's chaplain in ordinary,
Dr. Francis Hutchinson. This book may be considered as the
last blow at witchcraft, which from this time found credit only
among the most ignorant part of the population.
The case of Jane Wenham is the last instance of a witch be-
ing condemned by the verdict of an English jury. When the
prosecutors were no longer listened to in courts of justice, they
either ceased to find objects of pursuit, or they appealed for judg-
ment to the passions of the uneducated peasantry. An occurrence
of this kind, no less bi'utal than tragical, is said to have led to the
final repeal of the witchcraft act. The scene is again laid in
Hertfordshire. In the middle of the last century, there lived at
Tring, in that county, a poor man and his wife of the name of
Osborne, each about seventy years of age. During the rebellion
of 'forty-five, Mother Osborne, as she was popularly called, went
to one Butterfield, who kept a dairy at Gubblecot, to beg for some
buttermilk, but he said with great brutality that he had not enough
THE MURDER AT TRING. 411
for his hogs. The old woman, provoked by this treatment, went
away, telling him that the pretender would soon have him and
his hogs too. The connection with what followed perhaps arose
from the popular outcry which had long coupled the pretender
with Satan. Some time afterward, some of Butterfield's calves be-
came distempered, and the ignorant people of the neighborhood,
who had heard the story of the buttermilk, declared that they were
bewitched by Mother Osborne. In course of time Butterfield left
his dairy, and took a public-house in the same village, where,
about the beginning of the year 1751, he was troubled with fits,
and, although he had been subject to similar fits in former times,
these also were now ascribed to Mother Osborne. He was per-
suaded that the doctors could do him no good, and was advised
to send for an old woman out of Northamptonshire, a white witch,
who had the reputation of being skilful in counteracting the effects
of sorcery. This woman confirmed the opinion already afloat
of the cause of Butterfield's disorder, and she directed that six
men should watch his house day and night, with staves, pitch-
forks, and other weapons, at the same time hanging something
about th^r necks, which she said was a charm to secure them
from being bewitched themselves. This produced, as might be
expected, no effect, and the accusation might have dropped but;
the mob, after searching in vain the workhouse, and even look-
ing into the salt-box to see if the witch had transformed herself
into any diminutive form that could be concealed there, exhibited
their disappointment in breaking the windows, pulling down the
pales, and demolishing a part of the house. They then seized
upon the governor, and collecting together a quantity of straw,
threatened to drown him and set fire to the town, unless the im-
fortunate couple were delivered up to them. Fear at length in-
duced the parish officers to yield, and the two wretches were
stripped starknaked by the mob, their thumbs tied to their toes,
and thus, each wrapped in a loose. sheet, they were dragged two
miles, and thrown into a muddy stream. A chimney-sweeper,
named Colley, one of the ringleaders, seeing that the poor wo-
man did not sink, went into the pond and turned her over sev-
412 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
eral times with a stick, by which her body slipped out of the
sheet and was exposed naked. In this condition, and half choked
with mud, she was thrown on the bank, and there kicked and
beaten till she expired. Her husband died also of the injuries
he had received. The man who had superintended these brutal
proceedings went round to the crowd collecting money for the
amusement he had afforded them The coroner's inquest brought
!
and never acknowledged me for your master you must now take
;
with me, and be my servant, and I will make you more perfect
in your calling.' Whereupon the man gave up himself to the
devil, and received his mark, with this new name. After this he
grew very famous through the country, charming, and
for his
curing of diseases in men and beasts, and turned a vagrant fel-
low, like a jockey, gaining meal, and flesh, and money, by his
charms such was the ignorance of many at the time, whatever
;
switched him about the ears, saying. You warlock cairle, what
'
knave Hattaraick is the cause of his trouble, call for him in all
haste.' When he had come to her, Sandie,' said she, what is
—
' '
he, '
I should repent his striking of me at the yait late-
make him
ly.' the rogue fair words, and promising him his
She giving
pock full of meal, with beef and cheese, persuaded the fellow to
cure him again. He undertook the business, but I must first,'
'
says he, have one of his sarks ;' which was soon gotten. What
'
liam shall quickly go off the country, but shall never return.'
She knowing the fellow's prophesies to hold true, caused her
brother to make a disposition to her of all his patrimony, to the
defrauding of his younger brother, George. After that this war-
lock had abused the country for a long time, he was at last ap-
prehended at Dunbar, and brought into Edinburgh, and burnt up-
on the castle hill."
Another extraordinary case occurred about the end of August,
1696. One Christian Shaw, the daughter of John Shaw, of Bar-
garran, in the shire of Renfrevi^, about eleven years of age, per-
ceiving one of the maids of the house, named Catharine Camp-
bell, to steal and drink some milk, she told her mother of it.
Whereupon the maid, " being of a proud and revengeful humor,
and a great cursor and swearer, did, in a great rage, thrice im-
precate the curse of God upon the child, an"^d utter these words,
'the devil harle your soul through hell !' On Friday following, one
Agnes Nasmith came to Bargarran's house where she asked the
said Christian how the lady and young child were, and how old
35*
414 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
the young child was. To which Christian replied, What do I
*
know V Then Agnes asked, how herself did, and how old she
was. To which she answered that she was well, and in the
eleventh year of her age. On Saturday night thereafter, the child
went to bed in good health but so soon as she was asleep, she
;
where she was lying, with such violence, that her brains had
been dashed out, if a woman had not broken the force of the
child's motion, and remained as if she had been dead, for the
space of half an hour. After this she was troubled with sore
pains, except in some short intervals, and when any of the peo-
ple present touched any part of her body, she did cry and screech
with such vehemence, as if they had been killing her, but would
not speak. Some days thereafter she fell a crying that Catha-
rine Campbell and Agnes Nasmith were cutting her side and
other parts of her body. In this condition she continued a month,
with some variation, both as to the fits and intervals. She did
thrust out of her mouth parcels of hair, some curled, some plait-
ed, some knotted, of different colors, and in large quantities, and
likewise coal cinders, which were so hot that they could scarce-
ly be handled. One of which Dr. Brisbane, being by her when
she took it out of her mouth, felt it to be hotter than any one's
body could make it. The girl continued a long time in this con-
dition, till the government began to take notice of it, and gave
commission to some honorable gentlemen for the trials of those
two, and several others concerned in these practices and being
;
as with bodkinsand pins, lie openly lays tlie blame upon witch-
and accused Beatie Laing. He continued to be tormented,
craft,
and she was, by warrant, apprehended, with others in Pitten-
weem. No natural reason could be given for his distemper, his
face and neck being dreadfully distorted, his back prodigiously
rising and falling, his belly swelling and falling on a sudden, his
joints pliable, and constantly so stiff as no human power could
bow them. Beatie Laing and her hellish companions being in
custody, were brought to the room where he was, and his face
covered, he told his tormentors were in the room, naming them.
And though formerly no confession had been made, Beatie Laing
confessed her crime, and accused several others as accessories.
The said Beatie having confessed her compact with the devil,
and using of spells, and particularly her slockening' the coal in
'
he put his mark on her flesh, which was very painful. She was
shortly after ordered to attend the company, to go to one Mac-
Grigor's house, to murder him he awaking when they Avere
;
that she had packs of very good wool, which she instantl)^ sold,
and coming home with a black horse which she had with her,
they drinking till it was late in the night ere they came home,
that man said, What shall I do with the horse V She replied,
'
'
Cast the bridle on his neck, and you will be quit of him ;' and,
as her husband thought, the horse flew with a great noise away
in the air. They were, by a complaint to the privy council, pros-
ecuted by her majesty's advocate, in 1704, but all set at liberty
416 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
save one who died in Pittenweem. Beatie Laing died unde-
her bed, in St. Andrews all the rest died miserable and
sired, in ;
A'iolent deaths."
So says Mr. George Sinclair, who has, however, omitted to
inform us of the most frightful part of this story. Janet Corn-
foot, one of the -persons accused, made her escape from prison,
but she was recaptured, and brought back to Pittenweem, where,
falling into the hands of a ferocious mob, they pelted her with
stones, swung her on a rope extended from a ship to the shore,
and at length put an end to her sufferings by throwing a door
over her as she lay exhausted on the beach, and heaping stones
on it till she was pressed to death. This was the woman who,
according to Sinclair, " died in Pittenweem." The magistrates
had made no attempt to rescue the miserable woman from the
hands of her tormentors, and they were now violently attacked
in print for their conduct, and were as warmly defended by some
advocates. The agitation on the subject of the union with Eng-
land contributed to the impunity v/ith which the murderers es-
caped. But the controversy it occasioned, joined with the hor-
ror which such a barbarous outrage excited, tended more than
anything else to open people's eyes in Scotland to the absurdity
and wickedness of the prosecutions for witchcraft. It required,
however, a few more instances, remarkable chiefly for their ab-
surdity, to bring them entirely into discredit. In 1718, a carpenter
in the shire of Caithness, named William Montgomery, was infested
at night with cats, which, according to the evidence of his ser-
vant-maid, " spoke among themselves," and in a violent attack
upon them with every weapon within his reach, he inflicted per-
sonal injury to a very considerable extent. Two women were
believed to have died in consequence ol these injuries, and a
third, in a weak state, was imprisoned and compelled to confess
not only that she was one of the offending cats, but to declare
against a number of her confederates in witchcraft. A cen-
tury earlier, no doubt this confession would have been fatal to
most of the old women in the neighborhood but times were
;
changed, and the lord advocate, on being applied to, put a stop
to all further proceedings. In 1720, some old women of Calder
were imprisoned for certain pretended sorceries exercised on a
boy, the son of James, Lord Torpichen, but the officers of the
crown would not proceed to a trial. Yet two years later, a poor
woman was burnt as a witch in the county of Sutherland, by or-
der, of the sheriff", Captain David Ross, of Littledean. This was
WITCHCRAFT IN THE ISLAND MAGEE. 417
the last sentence of death for witchcraft that was ever passed
in Scotland.
It appears that in Ireland the law against witchcraft has never
been repealed, a circumstance that can only be explained on the
supposition that.since witchcraft began to fall into discredit it has
never, or very rarely, been appealed to. In 1711, there occurred
a case of witchcraft among the Scottish presbyterians of the
island Magee, in Ulster, which excited so much interest, at least
among the people of that persuasion, that it has been printed over
and over again, the edition I have before me bearing date in 1822,
upward of one hundred years after that of the event it commem-
orates. —
There is something peculiarly Irish in the story it is a
house, or rather a family, haunted by a spirit sent by witches.
Mrs. Anne Hattridge was the widow of the presbyterian minis-
ter of the district just mentioned, and was living with her son,
James Hattridge. At the beginning of September, 1710, the
house began to be disturbed by an invisible visiter, vvho threw
stones and turf about, pulled the pillows and bed-clothes off the
bed, and played a variety of other disagreeable pranks. Once
it appeared in the shape of a cat, which they killed and threw
into the yard, but when they looked for the body it had disap-
peared. •" There was little remarkable for several days after,
unless it were that her cane would be taken away, and be mis-
sing several days together; until the 11th of December, 1710,
when the aforesaid Mrs. Hattridge was sitting at the kitchen fire,
in the evening before daylight-going, a little boy (as she and the
servants supposed) came in and sat down beside her, having an
old black bonnet on his head, with short black hair, a half-worn
blanket about him, trailing on the ground behind him, and a torn
black vest under it. He seemed to be about ten or twelve years
old, but he still covered his face, holding his arm with a piece
of the blanket before it. She desired to see his face but he took no
notice of her. Then she asked him several questions viz., if
;
ing, he will take a course with this troublesome creature ;' upon
418 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
which the child said, Meg, let us go into the room and bar the
'
door, for fear it should kill us,' which they did then it jeered
;
them, saying, Now you think you are safe enough, but I'll get
'
in yet.'
" What way? for we have the street-door shut.
" Appar. I can come in by the least hole in the house, like a
cat or mouse, for the devil can make me anything I please.
THE TROUBLESOME VISITER. 419
" Girl. God bless me from thee, for thou art no earthly crea-
ture if you can do that.
" Upon which it took up a stone of considerable bigness, and
threw it which upon trial could not be
in at the parlor-window,
put out at the same place, and then went away for a little time.
A little after, the girl and one of the children came out of the
parlor to the kitchen, and looking out of the window, saw the
apparition catching a turkey-cock, which he threw over his shoul-
der, holding him by the tail and the cock making a great splut-
;
ter with his feet, the book before mentioned was, as they thought,
spurred out of the loop of the blanket he had about him but he, ;
taking no notice, run along the side of the house, and. leaped,
with the cock on his back, over a wall at the west end of the
garden, leaping a great deal higher than the wall. The girl,
thinking this a good opportunity to get the book, told Mrs. Hat-
tridge upon which she, with the girl and a little boy, went to the
;
garden, and got the book, without any harm done to it. At the
same time they looked about the garden and fields adjoining, but
could see nobody. There was no other person about the house
at that time except children. A little after, the girl went to the
window in the parlor, and looking out of the casement, saw the
apparition again, with the turkey-cock lying on its back before
him, he endeavoring to get his sword drawn to kill it, as she ap-
prehended, but the cock got away. It then looked for the book
in the loop of the blanket, and missing it, as she apprehended,
threw away the blanket, and ran nimbly up and down upon the
search for it. A little after, it came back with a club, and broke
the glass of the side window in the parlor, and then went to the
end window, through which the girl was looking, and pulled off,
the casement glass (not leaving one whole quarry in it), and left
it lying on the south side of the garden. A little after, the girl
ventured to look out of the broken window, and saw it as it were
digging near the end of the house with the sword. She asked
what he was doing 1 He answered, Making a grave.'
'
" Appar. I '11 not tell you that yet. Is your master at home 1
" Giri: Yes.
" Appar. Howcan you lie 1 he is abroad, and is dead fourteen
days ago.
" Girl. Of what sickness did he die ?
420 SORCERY AND MAGIC.
" Appar. I '11 not tell you that.
" After this it went over the hedge, as if it had been a bird
flying. Some persons of the neighborhood came in immediately
after, and being told, made a diligent search, but nothing could
be seen. Thus it continued from eight in the morning till two
or three in the afternoon, throwing a great many stones, turf, etc.,
in at the windows, to the great terror of those in the house."
Not long after this old Mrs. Hattridge was taken ill, and
died. But the spirit still haunted the house, and tormented a
young lady, a relative of the family,who had come to live there.
Mary Dunbar, for this was her name, was seized with a strange
disease on the 28th of February, accompanied with fits, in the
course of which she had the spectral vision, as it was called, of
certain women of the neighborhood, who she said, had sent
thither the tormenting spirit. All the other symptoms usually
exhibited by persons bewitched followed in due course, and sev-
eral persons whom she accused in her trances were taken into
custody and imprisoned at Carrickfergus to await their trial.
The jury brought them in guilty, but they appear not to have
been executed.
THE END.
A CATALOGUE
OF
BOOKS,
CLINTON HALL, N. Y.
AND FOR SALE BY MOST BOOKSELLERS IN THE UNITED STATES.
oJITi?®.®"^''^'^"^® ,^^^ executed in a fine style of the art, and the naoer
and the type are all that the most fastidious eye could
requiVe.»-ffiero|w'
upon which Mr. Chapman has been for years engaged and it is now
;
ous engravings, and the mechanical perfection of the whole, will allow
B^^ Any one Part may be had separately
the beauty, correctness, and finish of style, in which the pubUsher has pre-
sented it to his countrymen. The book is stricfly what it claims to be —
teacher of the art of Drawing. The method is so thorough, comprehensive,
and progi'essive its rules so "psise, exact, and clearly laid down and its classic
; ;
illustrations are so skUfuUy adapted to train the eye and hand, that no pupil
who faithfiiUy follows its guidance, can fail to become, at least, a correct
draughtsman. We have been especially pleased with the treatise on Perspec-
tive, which entirely sui'passes anything that we have ever met with upon
that difficult branch of art." Spirit of tlie Age.
" Perspective, is one of the most difficult branches of di'awing, and one the
least susceptible of verbal explanation. But so clearly are its principles devel-
oped in the beautiful letter-press, and so exquisitely are they illustrated by the
engravings, that the pupil's way is opened most invitingly to a thorough knowl-
edge of both the elements and application of Perspective." Hmne Journal.
" It ti'eats of Perspective with a masterly hand. The engravings are superb,
and the typography unsurpassed by any book with which we are acquainted.
It is an honor to the author and pubhsher, and a credit to our common coun-
try." Scientific American.
" This number is devoted to the explanation of Perspective, and treats that
difficult subject with admirable clearness, precision, and completeness. The
plates and letter-press of this work are executed with uncommon beauty. It
has received the sanction of many of our most eminent ai'tists, and can scaixely
be commended too highly." N. ¥. Tribune.
" This present number is dedicated to the subject of Perspective com- —
—
mencing with the elements of Geometa-y and is especially valuable to build-
ers, cai-penters, and other artisans, being accompanied with beautiftd Olusta-a-
tive designs di-awn by Chapman, and further simplified by plain and perspic-
uous directions for the guidance of the student. Indeed, the whole work,
from its undeviating simpUcity, exhibits the hand of a master. We
ti"ust this
highly useful and elevated branch of art will hereafter become an integral por-
tion of public education, and as it is more easily attainable, so will it ultimately
be considered an indispensable part of elementary insti-uction. Its cheapness
is only rivalled by its excellence, and the artistic beauty of its illustrations is
only equalled by the dignified ease and common sense exemplified in the
wi-itten directions that accompany each lesson. Poughheepsie Telegraph."
" The subject of Perspective we should think would interest every mechanic
in the countiy indeed, after
; all, this is the class to be the most benefited by
EOimd and thorough instmction in drawing." Dispatch.
" Permit me here to say I regard your Drawing-Book as a treasure. I was
a farmer-boy, and it was while daily foUovring the plough, that I became ac-
quainted with the first number of Chapman's Drawing-Book. I found in it
—
just what I desired a plain, sure road to that excellence in the Art ot Arts, that
my boyish mind had pictured as being so desirable, the first step lowai'd which
I had taken by malting mde sketches upon my painted ploughbeam, or iising
the bam-door as my easel, while with colored rotten-stone I first took wessons
from Nature. I am now at college. I have a class at drawing, and find in the
several numbers I have obtained, the time road for the teacher also." Exzract
/ram a letter recently received.
THE WORKS
OF
EDGAR ALLANPOE:
WITH NOTICES OF HIS LIFE AND GENIUS,
BY J. R. LOWELL, N. P. WILLIS, AND H. W. GRISWOLD.
In two Volumes, l2mo., vnth a Poutuait or the Authoh.
Pkice, Two Dollars attd Fifty Cents.
stories, that the events of it have not actually occurred, and the
characters had
a real existence." Philadelphia Ledger.
"We need not say that these voluaaes will be found rich in intellectual
excitements, and abounding in remarkable specimens of vigorous, beautiful,
and highly suggestive composition they are all that remains to us ot a man
;
ence 'ii'jugh few,' the circle will be constantly widemng, and they will retain a
proDiiaent place in our hterature." Rev. Dr. Kip
mUlBlFIIlILilO)'
9
moirs of distinguished female characters, embracing the period of the Covenant and the
Persecution, with such tales of heroism, devotion, ti-ials, triumphs, or deaths, as rouse
subdue, and deeply move the heart of the reader." N. Y. Observer.
" Many a mother in Israel will have her faith strengthened, and her zeal awakened,
and her courage animated afresh by the example set before her — by the cloud of wit
—
nesses of her own sex, who esteemed everything wealth, honor, pleasure, ease, and
life itself —vastly inferior to the grace of the Gospel ;and who freely oifered themselves
and all that they had, to the sovereign disposal of Him who had called them with an
holy calling ; according to his purpose and gra.ce."— Richmo7id, (Va.) Watchman and
*
Observer.
"The Scotch will read this book because it commemorates their noble
countrywo-
men ;
Presljyterians will like because it records the endurance and triumphs of their
it,
faith ; and the ladies will read it, as an interesting memorial of what their sex has done
in ti'ying times for truth and liberty." Cincinnati Central Christian Herald.
" It is a record which, while confers honor on the sex, will elevate the heart, and
it
"The Descendants of these saints are among us, in this Pilgrim land, and we earn-
commend this book to their perusal." Plymoth Old Colony Memorial.
estly
"There are pictures of endurance, trust, and devotion, in this volume of illustrious
which are worthy of a royal setting." Ontario Repositorrj.
suffering,
" They abound with incidents and anecdotes illusti'ative of the times and we need
scarcely say are deeply interesting to all who take an interest in the progress of Chris-
tianity." Boston Journal.
"Mr. Anderson has treated his subject ably and has set forth in strong light the en-
;
during faith and courage of the wives and daughters of the Covenanters."— iV. Y. Albion
" It is a book of great attractiveness, having not only the freshness of novelty but
every element of historical interest. —
Courier and Enquirer.
" The author a clergyman of the Scottish kirk, and has executed his undertaking
is
with that spirit and fulness which might be expected from one enjoying the best advan-
tages for the discovery of obscure points in the history of Scotland, and the warmest
sympathy with the heroines of his own creed." Commercial Advertiser.
JDST COMPLETED,
" We
do not hesitate to predict for these sketches a wide popularity.
They bear the true stamp of genius —
simp'le, natural, truthful and evince —
a keen sense of the humor and pathos, of the comedy and tragedy, of life
in the country. No one who has ever read it can forget the sad and beau-
tiful story of Mary Wilderraings its weird fancy, tenderness, and beauty ;
;
EIGHTEENTH CENTURY.
By AJtSENE HOUSSAYE.
"With Beautifully-Engraved Portraits of Louis XV. and Made, de Pompadour.
CO N TE NTS,
DUFRESNY. CARDINAL DE BERNIS.
LOUIS XV.
FONTENELLE GREUZE. CREBILLON THE GAY.
MARIVAUX. BODCHER. MARIE ANTOINETTE.
PIRON. THE VANLOOS. MADE DE POMPADOUR.
THE ABBE PREVOST. LANTARA. VADE.
GENTIL-BERNARD. WATTEAU. MLLE CAMARGO.
FLORIAN. LA MOTTE. MLLE CLAIRON.
BOUFFLERS. DEHLE. MAD.DELAPOPELINIERE
DIDEROT. ABBE TRUBLET. SOPHIE ARNOULD.
GRETRY. BUFFON. CREBILLON THE TRAGIC.
RIVEROL. DORAT. MLLE GUIMARD.
THREE PAGES IN THE LIFE OF DANCOURT.
A PROMENADE IN THE PALAIS-ROYAL.
LE CHEVALIER DE LA" CLOS.
"A series of pleasantly desultory papers — neither history, biography*
criticism, nor romance, but compounded of all four: always lively and
graceful, and often sparkling with esprit, that subtle essence which may be
so much better illustrated than defined. M. Houssaye's aim in these sketch-
es— for evidently he had an aim beyond the one he alleges of pastime for
his leisure hours —
seems to have been to discourse of persons rather cele-
brated than known, whose names and works are familiar to all, but with
whose characters and histories few are much acquainted. To the mass of
readers, his book will have the charm of freshness the student and the
;
man of letters, who have already drunk at the springs whence M. Houssaye
has derived his inspiration and materials, will pardon any lack of novelty
for the sake of the spirit and originality of the treatment." Blaceiwood.
IN PRESS,
DREAM-LAND BY DAYLIGHT;
A
PAI^ORAMA OF EOMAKCE.
Bt CAROLINE CHESEBRO.
" These simple and beautiful stories are all highly endued with an exquisite
ume ; and every lover of the beautiful and true will feel while perusing it that
he is conversing with a kindred spirit." Albany Evening Atlas.
" The journey through Dream-Land will be found full of pleasure ; and when
one returns from he will have his mind
it, filled with good suggestions for practi-
cal life." —Rochester Democrat.
" The anticipations we have had of this promised book are more than realized.
It is a collection of beautiful sketches, in which the cultivated imagination of the
authoress has interwoven the visions of Dream-Land with the realities of life."
Ontario Messenger.
" The sweet and touching purity of emotion, is itself an ear-
dedication, in its
rarer power of giving them the form and hue of imagination, without destroying
their identity." Harper's Magazine.
"In all the productions of Miss Chesebro's pen is evident a delicate perception
of the relation of natural beauty to the moral emotions, and a deep love of the true
and the beautiful in art and nature." Day-Book, •
A NEW AND POPULAR VOLVMTO.
H U N G A E Y.
BY THERESA PULSZKY.
With a Portrait of the Author.
In One Volume, Cloth— Price, One Dollar.
The above contaius, in addition to tlie English publication, a new Pkepace, and
Tales, now first printed from the manuscript of the Author, .who has a direct interest in
the pubhcatiou.
CONTENTS.
1. The Baron's Dausfhter. 11. The Cloister of Manastir.
2. The Castle of^ipsen. 12. Pan Twardowsky.
3: Yanoshik, theTlobber. 13. The Poor Tartar.
4. The Free Shot. 14. The Maidens' Castle.
5. The Golden Cross of Korosfo. 15. The Hair of the Orphan Girl.
6. The Guardians. 16. The Rocks of Lipnik.
7. The Love of tha Angels. 17. Jack, the Horse-Dealer.
8. The Maid and the Genii. 18. Klinsjsohr of Hungary.
9. Ashmodai, the Lame Demon. 19 Yanosh, the Hero.
10. The Nun of Rauchenbach. 20. The Hungarian Outlaws.
sitting, waiting for the time when he is to arise and deliver the world, in some fresh sub-
—
terranean cavern if we learn that there have been other seekers for the gi-eat carbuncle,
besides the party in the Far West,' whose pilgrimage was so impressively told by Mr.
'
HawthoiTie and other free shots' besides the one done into music by Weber in his op-
;
'
era. We are as glad to dream of finding the lost 'Golden Cross of Korosfo' as if we had
not been already set a-yearning by Moore for
*The round towers of other daj'S,'
buried deep in the bosom of Lough Neagh. But, in addition to these universal stories
—
old as time, and precious as beliet Madame Piilszky has a special budget of her own.
The legend of The Castle of Zipsen' is told with racy humor. Whimsically absurd, too,
'
are the mati-imonial difiiculties of Pan and Panna Tvi'ardowsky, as here related wliile ;
the fate of Vendelin Drugeth reveals how the wild huntsman' may be varied, so as to
'
give tliat fine old legend a more orthodox and edifying close than the original version
possesses. Most interesting of all are The Hungarian Outlaws.' " London Athenaum.
'
" This work claims more attention than is ordinarily given to books of its class. Such
is the fluency and correctness —
nay, even the nicety .and felicity of style with which —
Madame Pulszky writes the Englisli language, that merely in this respect the tales here
collected form a curious study. But they contain also highly suggestive illustrations of
national literature and character. To not a few of the traditions' of Hungary a living
'
force and significance are still imparted by the practices as well as the belief of her peas-
antry and people, and none were better qualified than the author of this book to give fa-
miliar and pointed expression to these national traits The pride and power of the
landed noble, in contrast with the more gaudy but less real power of the court the con- —
tinual struggle of the classes in immediate proximity with the noble and (that fancy so —
peculiar to rude ages in every counti-y) the calling in of the common robber to redress
—
the unequal social balance are among the prominent subjects of the traditions related by
Madame Pulszky with much beauty and vivacity. The tale or tradition which holds a
middle place between these and the purely fantastic, is that which describes the home-
life of the peasant, and, at the same time, satisfies the love of distant adventure, which he
cultivates as he follows his plough." London Examiner.
" Freshness of subject is invaluable ui literature —Hungary is still fresh ground. It has
been trodden, but it is not yet a common highway. The tales and legends are very vari-
ous, from the mere traditional anecdote to the regular legend, and they have the sort of
interest which all national traditions excite." London Leader.